japanese 170 reseach papaer

profileS1monD
tales_of_moonlight_and_rain.pdf

TALES OF MOONLIGHT AND RAIN

Ueda Akinari

Columbia University Press New York

tales of moonlight and rain

Translations from the Asian Classics

Image has been suppressed

tales

of

moon l igh t

a n d

ra i n

Ueda Akinari

A Study and Translation by anthony h. chambers

C O L U M B I A U N I V E R S I T Y P R E S S N E W Y O R K

Image has been suppressed

Columbia University Press

Publishers Since 1893

New York Chichester, West Sussex

Copyright © 2007 Columbia University Press

All rights reserved

Library of Congress Cataloging-in-Publication Data

Ueda, Akinari, 1734–1809.

[Ugetsu monogatari. English]

Tales of moonlight and rain : a study and translation by Anthony H. Chambers.

p. cm. — (Translations from the Asian classics)

Includes bibliographical references.

ISBN 0-231-13912-8 (cloth : alk. paper)

ISBN 0-231-51124-8 (electronic)

I. Chambers, Anthony H. (Anthony Hood)

II. Title. III. Series.

PL794.8.U3413 2006

895.6'33—dc22 2006015127

Columbia University Press books are printed on permanent and durable acid-free paper.

Printed in the United States of America

c 10 9 8 7 6 5 4 3 2 1

Frontispiece: Tosa Hidenobu, portrait of Ueda Akinari (1786). (Tenri Central Library, Nara)

Acknowledgments vii

I n t ro du c t i o n 1

The Early Modern Period in Japan 2

About the Author 3

Bunjin, National Learning, and Yomihon 8

About Tales of Moonlight and Rain 11

About the Translation 34

Ta l e s o f M o o n li g h t a n d R a i n 45

pre fac e 47

B o o k O n e

Shiramine 51

The Chrysanthemum Vow 75

B o o k two

The Reed-Choked House 91

The Carp of My Dreams 110

contents

B o o k t h re e

The Owl of the Three Jewels 121

The Kibitsu Cauldron 139

B o o k f ou r

A Serpent’s Lust 155

B o o k five

The Blue Hood 186

On Poverty and Wealth 202

Bibliography 221

vi contents

Haruo Shirane provided the initial spark by asking me to translate three stories from Ueda Akinari’s Tales of Moon- light and Rain for his Early Modern Japanese Literature: An Anthology, 1600–1900, and then suggesting that I translate the whole collection. Deborah Losse, Lawrence E. Marceau, and Donald Richie deserve special thanks for their encour- agement and suggestions. The College of Liberal Arts and Sciences at Arizona State University provided time for the work by giving me a year’s sabbatical. Even with time, the study and translation would have been impossible without the pathbreaking work of earlier scholars and the compilers of the marvelous reference works we all depend on. Thanks go also to my incomparable circle of friends and colleagues, who sustain me emotionally and intellectually.

Michael Ashby read the first draft and made countless perceptive comments. I am also indebted to Jennifer Crewe, Anne McCoy, Irene Pavitt, and the rest of the staff at Colum- bia University Press. The anonymous readers recruited by the press offered encouragement, pointed out errors, and provided valuable advice. Any problems that remain are, of course, my own responsibility.

ACKNOWLEDGMENTS

The translation is dedicated to all my teachers, especially, Ch’en Shou-yi, who introduced me to the study of East Asia; Makoto Ueda, who introduced me to Akinari; Robert H. Brower, who tutored me in Japanese court poetry; and Edward G. Seidensticker, my principal mentor over the years.

viii acknowledgments

tales of moonlight and rain

Tales of Moonlight and Rain (Ugetsu monogatari), nine sto- ries by Ueda Akinari (1734–1809) published in Osaka and Kyoto in 1776, is the most celebrated example in Japan of the literature of the strange and marvelous. It is far more, however, than an engrossing collection of ghost stories. Japanese scholars regard it, along with Genji monogatari (The Tale of Genji, early eleventh century) and the stories of Ihara Saikaku (late seventeenth century), as among the finest works of fiction in the canon of traditional Japanese literature. The reasons for this esteem have to do primar- ily with Akinari’s elegant prose—a model of literary Japa- nese enriched by Chinese borrowings—and with his subtle exploration of the psychology of men and women at the extremes of experience, where they come into contact with the strange and anomalous: ghosts, fiends, dreams, and other manifestations of the world beyond logic and com- mon sense.

Tales of Moonlight and Rain exerted a powerful influ- ence in the twentieth century. Many novelists—including Izumi Kyoka (1873–1939), Tanizaki Jun’ichiro (1886–1965), Akutagawa Ryunosuke (1892–1927), Ishikawa Jun (1899– 1987), Enchi Fumiko (1905–1986), and Mishima Yukio

INTRODUCTION

2 introduction

(1925–1970)—were avid readers of the collection. Two of the tales inspired Mizoguchi Kenji’s cinematic masterpiece Ugetsu monogatari (1953; known to Western viewers as Ugetsu), which is widely regarded as “one of the greatest of all films.”1 Deeply rooted in its eighteenth-century cultural context, Tales of Moonlight and Rain is nonetheless a work of timeless significance and fascination.

The Early Modern Period in Japan

In 1603 Japan began to settle into a long era of relative calm and prosperity after a century of disastrous civil war (War- ring States period [Sengoku jidai], 1467–1568) and nearly forty years of gradual pacification and unification (Azuchi– Momoyama period) under the successive warlord-unifiers Oda Nobunaga (1534–1582), Toyotomi Hideyoshi (1536– 1598), and Tokugawa Ieyasu (1542–1616). The Tokugawa shogunate—the military regime established by Ieyasu— governed Japan for 265 years, an era that is commonly referred to as the Edo period, after the site of the shogun’s capital, or the Tokugawa period. The emperor and the court continued to hold ultimate, though symbolic, authority in Kyoto during these years, but real power was wielded by the Tokugawa bureaucracy until it collapsed in 1868 and the Meiji emperor moved from Kyoto to Edo, which was then renamed Tokyo.

Cultural historians refer to the years from 1603 to 1868 as the early modern period and have divided it into three parts on the basis of cultural and political developments: early (1603–1715), middle (1716–1800), and late (1801–1868).2 The first blossoming of early modern literature came toward the end of the seventeenth century, particularly with the work of three major figures: the fiction writer Ihara Saikaku (1642– 1693), the poet Matsuo Basho (1644–1694), and the drama- tist Chikamatsu Monzaemon (1653–1724).

introduction 3

The period we are most concerned with here, the eigh- teenth century, can be regarded as the time when Tokugawa culture reached its high point.3 The stability of the country under Tokugawa rule (among other factors) made possible a flourishing of artistic activity by and for commoners, who previously had enjoyed only limited access to high culture.4 The man now recognized as the outstanding Japanese author of fiction in the eighteenth century was such a commoner, Ueda Akinari. By the time he began writing, a good educa- tion was no longer the monopoly of the court aristocracy, the samurai class, and the clergy: literacy rates were comparable to those in Europe,5 and education had spread to large num- bers of affluent residents of the great cities of Kyoto, Osaka, and Edo.6 As a commoner, Akinari wrote primarily for an audience of other well-educated urban residents.

About the Author

Ueda Senjiro was born in 1734 in Osaka, then the commercial center of Japan.7 Akinari, the name by which he is known, is a pen name that he began to use in the early 1770s. His mother, Matsuo Osaki, was the granddaughter of a peasant from Yam- ato Province who had gone to Osaka to become a merchant; the identity of his father is not known. In his fourth year, he was adopted by a prosperous merchant named Ueda Mosuke. Surviving a severe bout of smallpox that left several of his fin- gers malformed, the young Akinari had a comfortable child- hood and received a good education, possibly at the Kaitokudo, one of the most prominent of the new schools chartered by the government to provide “an appropriately practical Confu- cian education” to the children of the merchant and artisan classes.8 The curriculum would have included the Confucian canon—the Four Books (Lun yü [Analects] of Confucius, Da xue [The Great Learning], Zhong yong [The Doctrine of the Mean], and Mengzi [Mencius]) and the Five Classics (I jing [The Book

4 introduction

of Changes], Shu jing [The Book of Documents], Shi jing [The Book of Songs], Li ji [The Book of Rites], and Chun qiu [Spring and Autumn Annals])—and Japanese classics, especially waka (thirty-one-syllable court poems), Ise monogatari (Tales of Ise, ca. 947), and The Tale of Genji.

Akinari’s earliest surviving literary efforts are haikai verses included in several collections published in 1753 and 1755. Although composing haikai (playful, humorous) poetry, an outgrowth of renga (linked verse), began as an amusing pas- time, it had evolved into a serious pursuit by the eighteenth century. Akinari continued to write haikai throughout his life—even if he did not take it as seriously as did some of his contemporaries9—and the pursuit brought him into contact with important literary figures in Osaka and Kyoto, includ- ing the painter and haikai poet Yosa Buson (1716–1783), and with proponents of kokugaku (National Learning or Nativist Study), which emphasized the philological study of ancient Japanese literature.10

Akinari never made his living as a writer, however. He married Ueyama Tama in 1760; they enjoyed a happy mar- riage but had no children. Akinari’s adoptive father died in 1761, leaving to Akinari the family business and the respon- sibility for supporting himself, his new bride, and his adop- tive mother, to whom he was devoted. They lost their busi- ness and all their belongings to a fire in 1771, after which Akinari turned to the study of medicine, probably under Tsuga Teisho (ca. 1718–ca. 1794), one of many intellectuals of the time who combined scholarship, writing, and medicine. Akinari worked as a physician in Osaka until 1787, when he retired from medicine and occupied himself with scholar- ship, teaching, and writing. How he supported his family during these years is unclear; he may have lived on accumu- lated savings, and he may have earned some money from teaching Japanese classics.

Along with his friend Buson and his sometime mentor Takebe Ayatari (1719–1774), Akinari was a classic example of

introduction 5

the eighteenth-century bunjin—a nonconformist, indepen- dent artist, typically a painter and writer, who, though not a member of the aristocracy, devoted himself or herself to high culture, stood aloof from commercial or political profit, and felt disdain for the “vulgarity” of contemporary society.11 What the bunjin of the mid-Edo period shared was “avoiding the ‘vulgar’ (zoku) and placing themselves on heights beyond the reach of the ‘vulgar.’”12 The bunjin ideal was inspired in part by the Chinese wen-jen (written with the same charac- ters as bunjin, signifying a person of letters) of earlier times, and one aspect of the eighteenth-century bunjin’s avoidance of vulgarity involved the study of Chinese culture, including vernacular Chinese fiction. This was true of Akinari.

Akinari’s first works of fiction, however, owe little to Chi- nese models and much to the ukiyo zoshi (books of the floating world) tradition of the late seventeenth and early eighteenth centuries, with its typically lighthearted, satirical treatment of the foibles of ordinary people. Akinari produced two col- lections of stories in this genre, Shodo kikimimi sekenzaru (A Worldly Monkey Who Hears About Everything, 1766) and Seken tekake katagi (Characters of Worldly Mistresses, 1767), which turned out to be the last significant ukiyo zoshi.13 Aki- nari quickly turned his attention to other interests.

One of these was National Learning. Akinari had begun a serious study of the Japanese classics, especially waka, before 1760. A few years later, he studied with Ayatari and then with Kato Umaki (1721–1777), a disciple of the great nativist scholar Kamo no Mabuchi (1697–1769). This led him to abandon the ukiyo zoshi tradition in favor of writing fiction that is far richer and more serious, as well as treatises on such classics as Tales of Ise; the Man’yoshu (Collection of Myriad Leaves, ca. 759), the oldest anthology of Japanese poetry; and the Kokin- shu (Collection of Ancient and Modern Poems, 905), the first imperially commissioned anthology of waka. His studies also embroiled him in a famous scholarly debate, which contin- ued over a number of years and on various subjects, with the

6 introduction

most noted of the National Learning scholars, Motoori Nori- naga (1730–1801)—a confrontation that Blake Morgan Young has characterized as “a clash between the rustic’s blind faith and the urbanite’s critical scepticism,” Norinaga, who lived in Ise, being the rustic.14 Their disagreements ranged from phonology to mythology. Norinaga’s arguments depended on his absolutely literal reading of ancient Japanese compendia of myth and history, while Akinari insisted on a more inter- pretative, empirical approach.15

Akinari’s studies of ancient Japanese literature merged with bunjin ideals, especially the avoidance of vulgarity and the fascination with Chinese fiction, to shape the solemn beauty of his masterpiece, Tales of Moonlight and Rain. The nine stories in this collection frequently allude to, quote from, and borrow words and phrases from Japanese classics and Chinese fiction and rise above zoku—even though most of the characters in the stories are commoners—to achieve the aesthetic ideal of ga (elegance, refinement), which had been associated with Kyoto court culture.16 No one doubts Akinari’s authorship of Moonlight and Rain, but he signed the work with a pen name and never acknowledged that he had written it. Although the collection is the principal basis for his fame, he probably would have preferred to be remem- bered for his waka, his studies in National Learning, and his expertise in a form of tea ceremony.

As a scholar, Akinari distinguished himself through edit- ing and publishing works by Kamo no Mabuchi and his cir- cle. In 1773 he wrote Ya kana sho (or Yasaisho), a commentary on the particles ya and kana, but for some reason he would not allow it to be published until 1787, when it appeared with a preface by Buson. Kaseiden, Akinari’s biographi- cal study of the great Man’yoshu poet Hitomaro (late sev- enth–early eighth centuries), apparently was written in 1781. The astonishing Reigotsu (ca. 1793) was “a comprehensive work in six sections, one each on the names of Shinto dei- ties, the names of Japan’s provinces, noted products of the

introduction 7

various regions, poetry, terminology, and systems of kana orthography,” but only the kana section survives.17 In 1794 he published Man’yoshu kaisetsu, a short study of the ancient anthology, and in 1800 he began a comprehensive commen- tary on the Man’yoshu, which, however, he left unfinished. Kinsa (1804) and Kinsa jogen (1804) bring together favorite poems from the Man’yoshu, with Akinari’s commentaries on them.

Akinari also compiled several miscellanies. Two are col- lections of humorous and satirical stories: Kakizome kigen kai (New Year’s Calligraphy and a Sea of Changing Feelings, 1787) and Kuse monogatari (Tales of Eccentricity, 1791; published 1822), whose title parodies Ise monogatari. Tsuzurabumi (Basket of Writings, 1805–1806), a collection of his prose and poetry, represents the final stage of Akinari’s serious liter- ary work, as he saw it; after it was published, he threw all his manuscripts down a well. Tandai shoshinroku (A Record of Daring and Prudence) was completed in 1808.18

Akinari wrote waka and haikai verse throughout his adult life and was one of the most distinguished waka poets of his time. His personal collection of waka, Aki no kumo (Autumn Clouds), was completed in 1807. He also distinguished him- self as an expert in senchado (the Way of sencha), a form of tea ceremony that employs tea leaves instead of the powdered tea of the better-known chanoyu ceremony. Seifu sagen (Triv- ial Words on Pure Elegance, 1794), his treatise on senchado, is a classic in the field. Pottery implements that Akinari made for the ceremony survive.19

Akinari did not abandon fiction after Moonlight and Rain. In 1808 and 1809, he gathered ten of his stories and essays under the title Harusame monogatari (Tales of the Spring Rain). The collection is uneven, partly because Akinari died before he could polish it to his satisfaction, and per- haps because he wrote more for his own enjoyment than for publication. The pieces in Spring Rain are less tightly structured than the stories in Moonlight and Rain, and the

8 introduction

element of the marvelous and strange is relatively unimport- ant. The language is plainer, and there is much less reliance on Chinese sources. Perhaps even more than the tales in Moonlight and Rain, the stories and essays in Spring Rain attest to Akinari’s studies in National Learning, particularly in the emphasis he placed on naoki kokoro (true heartedness, sincerity, guilelessness), which he apparently held to be the essential nature of the Japanese people. The stories in Spring Rain represent Akinari’s most important fiction aside from Moonlight and Rain.20

In 1793 Akinari and his wife moved from Osaka to Kyoto, where they lived in poverty near the temple Chion-in, on the east side of the capital. His wife died in 1797. Within a few months, Akinari, whose vision had been failing for some time, went blind, but then regained partial vision in one eye. He continued his writing and scholarship as he moved here and there in Kyoto, depending on friends for support, until his death in 1809 on the twenty-seventh day of the Sixth Month (August 8, in the Western calendar), in his seventy- sixth year. His grave is at the Buddhist temple Saifukuji, near the Nanzenji monastery.

Bunjin, National Learning, and Yomihon

The result of Akinari’s synthesis, in Moonlight and Rain, of a bunjin orientation with the National Learning was a new genre: the yomihon (books for reading).

The distinction between ga and zoku arose from ancient Chinese poetics and was embraced by Japanese artists of the Tokugawa period. As the painter Gion Nankai (1677–1751) said, “ga is neatness, propriety, elegance; zoku is vulgarity.”21 This analysis was applied to all the arts, including painting and literature. From the Japanese point of view, elegant liter- ary genres encompassed Chinese poetry and prose, includ- ing fiction; Japanese court poetry and linked verse; classi-

introduction 9

cal monogatari, such as Ise and Genji; and no dramas.22 The traditional ga–zoku aesthetic was modified, however, by Japanese artists in the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries from a system that distinguished clearly between the courtly and the common, into a quest for elegance in realms that had traditionally been considered vulgar. Thus Basho urged his students to raise their minds “to an enlightened state, [and then] return to zoku,” by which he meant “practicing ga while remaining in the ordinary zoku world of haikai.”23 In short, “Basho raised haikai poetry, traditionally a zoku form, to the world of ga, thereby confounding the traditional dis- tinctions of ga and zoku.”24

The objective of finding elegance in the vulgar dovetails with one of the goals of the scholars of National Learning, the “articulation of links between the mythological past, the recorded history of the aristocratic few, and the daily lives of common folk.”25 This agenda is related, of course, to the rising wealth and influence of the urban classes—primar- ily merchants and artisans—in the early modern period and their desire to participate in the high culture associ- ated with the court aristocracy. The consequent blurring of the distinction between ga and zoku can be seen clearly in Moonlight and Rain. As a bunjin, Akinari rejected the com- mon, and all the elegant genres are reflected in Moonlight and Rain. At the same time, the peasants (zoku) in “The Reed-Choked House,” for example, are remarkably well versed in waka (ga), and the inclusion of haikai (zoku) in the same context as waka and Chinese poetry (ga) in “The Owl of the Three Jewels” implicitly raises haikai to the same level of elegance. In Moonlight and Rain, then, peasants and haikai participate in the aristocratic tradition as Akinari lifts them—and eighteenth-century Japanese fiction—from the vulgar realm of ukiyo zoshi to the elegant sphere of court poetry and monogatari.26

The National Learning agenda is reflected in Moonlight and Rain in at least two other ways. First, the philological

10 introduction

study of ancient Japanese texts, one of the principal activi- ties of National Learning scholars, influenced Akinari’s choice of vocabulary and phrasing so often that a reader is hard put to count the examples.27 Indeed, the abundance of archaic words and expressions from, and allusions to, the Kojiki (Record of Ancient Matters, 712), the Man’yoshu, Tales of Ise, the Kokinshu, The Tale of Genji, and other clas- sics is the main reason that Moonlight and Rain is difficult to read. The classical lexicon also serves to associate Moonlight and Rain with court literature. Second, in opposition to the Confucian emphasis on rationalism, scholars of National Learning insisted that many things lie beyond the ability of human beings to understand, analyze, and explain—a belief that was based on an unquestioning acceptance of Japanese mythology.28 While Akinari rejected Norinaga’s uncritical embrace of ancient mythology, he did share the National Learning scholars’ propensity to “celebrate the mysterious wonders of life,”29 which takes an especially vivid form in Moonlight and Rain.

In synthesizing the bunjin aesthetic and National Learn- ing, Akinari produced a masterpiece in a new genre—the yomihon, a more serious form of literature than its prede- cessor, the ukiyo zoshi. The term yomihon comes from the genre’s characteristically heavy emphasis on the written text, as opposed to oral narratives and booklets in which illustra- tions play a central role. The language of yomihon, including Moonlight and Rain, is elegant, somewhat archaic, and often full of allusions to Chinese and Japanese antecedents. In short, the emphasis is on serious reading. The first yomihon writers were Tsuga Teisho, who probably instructed Akinari in medicine, and Takebe Ayatari, one of Akinari’s mentors in National Learning. Teisho’s Hanabusa soshi (A Garland of Heroes, 1749) is considered the first yomihon. Its prose style is characterized by wakan konko (a blend of Japanese and Chinese) and gazoku setchu (a blend of elegant and vulgar). Like Moonlight and Rain, A Garland of Heroes consists of nine

12 introduction

Why the preface bears the date “Meiwa 5, late spring” (the Third Month of 1768) has been the subject of considerable research and discussion, since the preface and the stories were first published eight years later. There are good reasons to think that a preface that Akinari had drafted in 1768, as part of the “Saigyo Stories” project, was followed by eight years of studying, writing, and revising before the tales in Moonlight and Rain reached their present form.33 Another possibility is that Akinari used the date of 1768 so that his work would appear to be contemporaneous with A Tale of the Western Hills, the preface of which is dated “Meiwa 5, spring, Second Month.”34

Moonlight and Rain belongs, of course, to a different genre—yomihon—from A Worldly Monkey and Worldly Mis- tresses and, presumably, their planned sequels. Neverthe- less, the titles of the unpublished works contain tantalizing suggestions of connections with Moonlight and Rain. First, both titles—“Tidings from a Cargo Ship in Various Prov- inces” and “Saigyo Stories: Poetic Sites Bundled in a Dyed Cloth”—anticipate the prominence of travel in Moonlight and Rain (in all but the last of the nine tales) and the location of all the stories in the provinces (as opposed to the great cities). Second, “Saigyo Stories: Poetic Sites Bundled in a Dyed Cloth” anticipates Moonlight and Rain in two additional ways: Saigyo, the beloved poet-monk of the twelfth century, appears in the first Moonlight and Rain story, “Shiramine”; and “poetic sites” (utamakura), place-names used frequently in poetry and listed in handbooks of poetic composition, are mentioned in almost all the tales, with special prominence in “Shiramine,” “The Carp of My Dreams,” “The Owl of the Three Jewels,” and “A Serpent’s Lust.” In short, “various provinces,” “Saigyo,” and “poetic sites” in the titles of the unpublished ukiyo zoshi are important elements in Moon- light and Rain. There can be little doubt that Moonlight and Rain grew from the germs of “Tidings from a Cargo Ship in Various Provinces” and “Saigyo Stories.” The resulting

introduction 13

yomihon is a work of far greater psychological depth, narra- tive sophistication, and historical and philological awareness than A Worldly Monkey and Worldly Mistresses, and it incor- porates two new elements: the adaptation of Chinese stories and the strange or anomalous.

t itle

The title Ugetsu monogatari (literally, “rain-moon tales”) comes from the phrase “misty moon after the rains” in the preface. It alludes to the no play Ugetsu, in which Saigyo appears, as he does in “Shiramine,” and in which rain and the moon are central images.35 Commentators have also pointed to a passage in “Mudan deng ji” (Peony Lantern), a story in Qu You’s Jiandeng xinhua (New Tales After Trim- ming the Lamp, 1378), one of Akinari’s principal sources for “The Kibitsu Cauldron,” which suggests that mysterious beings appear on cloudy, rainy nights and in mornings with a lingering moon. In any case, educated East Asian readers would probably guess immediately that a book containing the term “rain-moon” in its title would deal with the strange and marvelous.

sources

Much has been written about Akinari’s use of Chinese and Japanese sources in Moonlight and Rain—more than sixty Chinese sources, according to Noriko T. Reider, and more than a hundred Japanese.36 (For the titles of important sources, see the introductions to the tales.)

Akinari used his sources in several ways. For some tales— “The Chrysanthemum Vow,” “The Carp of My Dreams,” “The Kibitsu Cauldron,” and “A Serpent’s Lust”—he bor- rowed the story line of a Chinese work, always with signifi-

14 introduction

cant modifications that ease the transition to a Japanese set- ting. Further, many scenes and situations in the tales echo those in Chinese or Japanese sources. Examples include the description of Katsushiro’s house when he returns from the capital in “The Reed-Choked House,” which echoes the “Yomogiu” (The Wormwood Patch) chapter of The Tale of Genji; the depiction of the temple at Yoshino in “A Serpent’s Lust,” which echoes the “Wakamurasaki” (Lavender) chap- ter of Genji; and the arrival of Kaian at the village in “The Blue Hood,” which echoes chapter 5 of Shuihu zhuan (Water Margin, fourteenth century), attributed to Shi Nai’an and Luo Guanzhong. Akinari also borrowed words and phrases from his Chinese sources and from the Japanese classics he stud- ied, especially the Kojiki, the Man’yoshu, Tales of Ise, and The Tale of Genji. Finally, he seems to have structured individual stories along the lines of Chinese tales and in imitation of the structure of no plays, and the organization of the collec- tion as a whole seems to be influenced by the no.

Far from trying to hide his indebtedness to Chinese and Japanese precedents, Akinari undoubtedly hoped and expected that his readers would derive pleasure from recognizing his sources and appreciate his ingenuity in adapting them. The borrowings, allusions, and echoes that fill Moonlight and Rain also add richness and complexity to the tales. As with the references to earlier texts in The Tale of Genji and the use of honkadori (allusive variation) in Japanese court poetry, the reader’s awareness of other texts interacting with Akinari’s adds resonance and depth to the reading experience.37 The borrowings also draw the reader into the text and involve him or her in the creative process, as they reward, flatter, and delight the reader who is erudite enough to recognize them.38 Finally, the liberal use of Chinese and courtly Japanese sources lifts Moonlight and Rain, by association, into the elegant realm of Water Margin and Genji, the two works that Akinari mentions at the beginning of his preface, and, in the same way, lifts

introduction 15

Akinari himself into the lofty company of his Chinese and Japanese predecessors.

Even when Akinari’s borrowings from Chinese sources are most direct—in “The Chrysanthemum Vow,” “The Carp of My Dreams,” “The Kibitsu Cauldron,” and “A Serpent’s Lust”—he ingeniously adapted the stories to Japanese set- tings and enriched them with a psychological complexity that is absent in their Chinese counterparts. Again and again, the reader is struck by the wonderful aptness of the time and place in which Akinari placed his tales. By mak- ing Akana Soemon a samurai in “The Chrysanthemum Vow,” for example, he introduced the themes of samurai loyalty and honor, whereas the character who corresponds to Soemon in the Chinese story is a merchant who sim- ply forgets the date of his appointment.39 In “The Carp of My Dreams,” Akinari introduced the crucial theme of Bud- dhist compassion by placing a Buddhist monk at the cen- ter of the story and invoked a long tradition of descriptive Japanese literature and art by setting the story at Miidera. In “The Kibitsu Cauldron,” he introduced Shinto elements— prophecy and the role of spirits—by connecting the charac- ters to the Kibitsu Shrine. In “A Serpent’s Lust,” he imbeds the Chinese-inspired story line in the context of Japanese legends about storied places: Kumano, Yoshino, and Dojoji. In these carefully chosen settings, Akinari’s characters reveal distinctive personalities, unlike the characters in his Chinese sources. As Robert Ford Campany has pointed out, the authors of Chinese anomaly accounts were not concerned with “the ‘inner’ nature (xing of intellectual and emotional disposition, nor the structure of the self’s ascent toward perfection through self-cultivation, but pre- cisely humankind’s taxonomic place among other kinds of beings, the nature of its relationships to other kinds.”40 In Moonlight and Rain, by contrast, it is precisely the charac- ters’ inner natures—saga, the reading in Japanese of the character read xing in Chinese—that concerned Akinari, as

Image has been suppressed

16 introduction

Uzuki Hiroshi emphasizes in his commentaries.41 Donald Keene makes the same point: “The very fact that one can describe Katsushiro’s character places him in an altogether different category from Chao or Seiroku [who correspond to Katsushiro in the Chinese and Japanese antecedents to “The Reed-Choked House”], neither of whom displays any distinctive traits.”42

narrating the strange

Moonlight and Rain has been called a collection of “ghost stories,”43 “gothic tales,”44 and “tales of the supernatural.”45 In Japanese, they are called kaidan; indeed, the edition of 1776 includes the subtitle Kinko [present and past] kaidan. As Reider says, “Kaidan are tales of the strange and mys- terious, supernatural stories often depicting the horrific and gruesome,” and the word kaidan means “narrating the strange.”46 No one would argue with “strange and mysteri- ous,” but “supernatural” is probably an inappropriate word, since what is considered to be supernatural in one culture is regarded as merely strange—but natural—in another.47 Belief in revenants, spirit possessions, and other phenom- ena that we might call “supernatural” was widespread in eighteenth-century Japan and was apparently shared by Akinari.48 If the term “supernatural” is inappropriate, so is “fantastic,” as defined by Tzvetan Todorov, because “the basis of the fantastic is . . . the ambiguity as to whether the weird event is supernatural or not,”49 and such ambiguity is absent in Akinari’s world. “Strange” and “anomalous,” words that have been used in the study of Chinese stories, are more useful when discussing Moonlight and Rain.50

Strange beings abound in Japanese art, folklore, and liter- ature. They include kami (Shinto deities); spirits, deities, and divine beings from other traditions, such as Buddhist and Chinese lore; spirits of humans, living or dead, that can pos-

introduction 17

sess other people; revenants; oni (demons and fiends); tengu (goblins); trickster animals, such kitsune (fox) and tanuki (raccoon-dog); and other animals, such as serpents, that have strange powers. All of these, except kami and trickster ani- mals, figure prominently in Moonlight and Rain. The venge- ful ghost of the former emperor Sutoku returns to earth as king of the tengu in “Shiramine.” In “The Chrysanthemum Vow” and “The Reed-Choked House,” a faithful revenant ful- fills a promise. In “The Owl of the Three Jewels,” vengeful ghosts return as asura (J. ashura or shura), violent human beings who, in Buddhist lore, are reborn as violent demons. “The Kibitsu Cauldron” features the possessing spirit of a jealous woman—first when she is alive and then after she has died. In “A Serpent’s Lust,” a jealous serpent in the form of a woman seeks revenge on her husband. A monk turns into an oni and then miraculously stays alive for a year while meditating, in “The Blue Hood.” “On Poverty and Wealth” features a little man who introduces himself as the spirit of gold. “The Carp of My Dreams” differs from the other sto- ries in that no anomalous being plays a major role; instead, the story deals with the anomaly of a man who crosses the boundaries between human and animal, and between the waking world and the world of dreams.

Tengu and oni, which have no exact Western equivalents, require some explanation. Tengu are goblins said to live deep in the mountains. In Japanese art, they often resemble birds but sometimes take human form, with wings and a beak or long nose. They were “regarded as harbingers of war” because of their “insatiable desire to be destructive and to wreak havoc upon people’s lives.”51 It is fitting, then, that the malicious spirit of the former emperor Sutoku becomes a tengu to exact his revenge. The Minamoto leader Yoshi- tsune, who had defeated Sutoku’s enemies, was said to have learned martial arts from a tengu. Tengu were apparently brought under control by the Tokugawa government, which issued commands to them and expected them to obey.52 Oni

18 introduction

are usually depicted as grotesque, humanlike beings with horns, fangs, and claws, and clad in a tiger-skin loincloth or, sometimes, a monk’s robes, as in the Otsu prints that depict an oni-nembutsu (oni dressed as an itinerant monk).53 Some oni serve as soldiers in the Buddhist hell, but oni can also be benevolent, as was Ryogen (912–985), chief abbot of the Tendai sect, who is said to have become an oni after his death in order to protect the Enryakuji temple complex on Mount Hiei.54 Finally, the word oni is often applied to a cruel or frightening person. The mad abbot in “The Blue Hood” becomes an oni in this last sense of the word.

The categories suggested by Campany in his study of Chinese anomaly accounts help clarify the nature of the anomalies in Moonlight and Rain.55 As Campany says, “Most (but not all) anomalies . . . occur at or across bound- aries”56—for example, between humans and animals or the living and the dead. Two of Akinari’s stories involve “anom- aly by transformation,”57 in which a being is metamor- phosed across a boundary that normally separates humans from animals and the apparent from the real: “The Carp of My Dreams,” in which a man seems to become a fish,58 and “A Serpent’s Lust,” in which a woman turns out to be a serpent.59 A category not posited by Campany—the bound- ary between mineral and animal—also figures in “The Carp of My Dreams,” when paintings turn into real fish. Most of the stories in Moonlight and Rain involve “anom- aly by contact,” specifically, “contact with the realm of the dead”:60 “Shiramine,” “The Chrysanthemum Vow,” “The Reed-Choked House,” “The Owl of the Three Jewels,” and “The Kibitsu Cauldron,” which also features the vengeful, possessing spirit of a living person, a type not mentioned by Campany. “The Carp of My Dreams” belongs to the category of “contact through dreams.”61 In the last story, “On Poverty and Wealth,” contact occurs between a human being and a spirit.62 Finally, two stories involve “sexual con- tact with non-human (or non-living human) beings”:63 “The

introduction 11

stories adapted from Chinese sources to Japanese settings and grouped into five books, as does its sequel, Shigeshige yawa (1766). It seems likely that Akinari modeled his col- lection on Teisho’s.30 Ayatari’s Nishiyama monogatari (A Tale of the Western Hills) appeared in 1768, eight years before the publication of Moonlight and Rain. In contrast to Teisho’s and Akinari’s yomihon, A Tale of the Western Hills consists of ten chapters grouped into three books and concerns a con- temporary scandal in the capital. The prose style of Moon- light and Rain combines that of A Garland of Heroes with the elegant, neoclassical prose of A Tale of the Western Hills.31 Tales of Moonlight and Rain is unquestionably the finest of the early yomihon.

About Tales of Moonlight and Rain

composit ion and publicat ion

An advertisement at the end of Akinari’s story collection A Worldly Monkey Who Hears About Everything announces the forthcoming publication of two more works by the same author: Characters of Worldly Mistresses and “Shokoku kaisen dayori” (Tidings from a Cargo Ship in Various Provinces).32 Worldly Mistresses, published the following year, repeats the advertisement for “Tidings from a Cargo Ship,” adding “Se- kenzaru kohen” (A Worldly Monkey, Part Two) to the title, and announces a forthcoming work to be called “Saigyo hanashi utamakura somefuroshiki” (Saigyo Stories: Poetic Sites Bundled in a Dyed Cloth). The context and the titles suggest that both “Tidings from a Cargo Ship” and “Saigyo Stories” were to have been ukiyo zoshi like A Worldly Monkey and Worldly Mistresses, but neither “Tidings from a Cargo Ship” nor “Saigyo Stories” was published. In their place came Tales of Moonlight and Rain in 1776, with a preface dated 1768, the year after the publication of Worldly Mistresses.

introduction 19

Reed-Choked House,” in which “marital relations estab- lished during life continue after death,”64 and “A Serpent’s Lust.” “The Blue Hood” generally follows the pattern that Campany has described for Buddhist tales (for a detailed explanation, see the introduction to “The Blue Hood”).65 In most of Akinari’s stories, then, the anomalies correspond to categories that had been used for centuries by Chinese writers. This is not only because Akinari adapted Chinese stories, but also because Chinese lore had been trickling into Japan, along with Chinese Buddhist and secular texts, for more than a thousand years and naturally influenced the methods of Japanese storytellers.

sett ings

The chronological and geographical settings of each story in Moonlight and Rain are shown in the table. The names of provinces are accompanied by the names, in parentheses, of the corresponding modern prefectures.

Title Date Location

1 “Shiramine” 1168 Sanuki (Kagawa)

2 “The Chrysanthemum Vow” 1486 Harima (Hyogo)

3 “The Reed-Choked House” 1455–1461 Shimosa, Omi

(Chiba, Shiga)

4 “The Carp of My Dreams” 923–931 Omi (Shiga)

5 “The Owl of the Three Jewels” ca. 1616 Mount Koya, in Kii

(Wakayama)

6 “The Kibitsu Cauldron” ca. 1500 Kibi, Harima

(Okayama, Hyogo)

7 “A Serpent’s Lust” 794–1185? Kii, Yamato

(Wakayama, Nara)

8 “The Blue Hood” 1471–1472 Shimotsuke (Tochigi)

9 “On Poverty and Wealth” ca. 1595 Aizu (Fukushima)

20 introduction

Three things are striking about the settings. First, they are specific. Second, all the stories except “The Owl of the Three Jewels” take place before the establishment of the Tokugawa shogunate in 1603. Third, none of the stories is set in any of the three great cities of Akinari’s time—Kyoto (the capi- tal), Osaka (the center of commerce), and Edo (the seat of the shogunate)—where most of his readers lived. In other words, the stories are specifically located at a chronological, geographical, and, therefore, political distance from Akinari’s world. Various reasons can be imagined for this distancing, and it affects the stories in various ways.

None of the stories is set “in a certain province,” but always in a real place and, with the exception of “A Serpent’s Lust,” at a more or less precisely specified time, not “once upon a time” or its Japanese equivalent, mukashi mukashi. This specificity has the effect of grounding the strange beings and events in the real world, thus lending plausibility to the stories. Speci- ficity also makes the geographical and chronological distanc- ing more effective than vagueness would have done.

Improvements in highways and other means of trans- portation—not to mention prosperity and relative freedom from bandits and warlords—made domestic travel in Japan fairly safe and increasingly popular during the Edo period. By contrast, the dangers of travel in the fifteenth century are portrayed in “The Reed-Choked House.” Akinari is known to have traveled widely in Japan, possibly as far as the Kanto region (now greater Tokyo).66 Journeys and far-off destina- tions thus were subjects of intrinsic interest to the author and his intended audience. The opening words of the first story—“Allowed by the guards to pass through the Osaka Barrier, he found it hard to look away from the mountain’s autumn leaves, but he traveled on to Narumi Shore”—put the reader on notice that the narrative is moving away from the capital and toward the provinces. More than a love of travel is involved, however. From the perspective of the cap-

introduction 21

ital—and of Osaka and Edo—the provinces were more or less exotic places and definitely less civilized than the great cities. This conventional attitude has a long history in Japan. In The Tale of Genji, even Uji, just a few miles outside the capital, is depicted (with some hyperbole) as a wild, danger- ous place. Nor is this attitude unique to Japan. As Campany has written, “From the point of view of a center of urban culture, the ‘distance’ between the center and its periphery is seldom a matter of mere geographical space, or of the calendrical time required for the journey out and back. The peripheral is, from a centrist perspective, the anomalous— the external other.”67 Thus when a story moves away from the capital, the reader is prepared to encounter strange and wonderful things; mysterious happenings are more believ- able when they occur far from home; and a provincial setting facilitates the Japanese reader’s “suspension of disbelief,” in Coleridge’s phrase.

Nevertheless, anomalies, even when they occur in dis- tant provinces, represent disorder, and it would not do to suggest that the Tokugawa regime permitted disorder any- where in Japan—especially in such extreme forms as canni- balism, necrophilia, and sexual relations between humans and nonhumans.68 This is why the chronological settings of the stories, before Tokugawa rule began, is at least as significant as the geographical settings. As a collection of pre-Tokugawa anomalies in the provinces, Moonlight and Rain indirectly draws attention to the orderliness of the Tokugawa era and reinforces the normality of the center, the big city. “The Owl of the Three Jewels,” the only story that is set during Tokugawa times, is the exception that proves the rule: it opens with praise for the Tokugawa regime and portrays one of the predecessors of the Tokugawa as having been so bloodthirsty that he was reborn as an asura. The old days, according to these stories, were not nearly as good as the present.

22 introduction

structure of the stories

Much of Campany’s analysis of the structure of Chinese anomalous accounts is applicable to the Moonlight and Rain stories.69 He identifies ten typical structural elements, the last three of which are not present in all the stories he stud- ies. I use “The Owl of the Three Jewels” to illustrate these elements in Moonlight and Rain.

1. Chronological and geographical settings. The opening paragraph hints that “The Owl of the Three Jewels” takes place during the Edo period; this time frame is made explicit later: “more than eight hundred years” after the founding of Mount Koya. The second paragraph identifies the place: “In a village called Oka, in Ise.”

2. Specifier. The story provides “some indication . . . of the specific situation or string of events . . . , so that the focus is narrowed to a particular occasion when an event happened. This focusing is usually accomplished in part by introducing a protagonist.”70 In “The Owl of the Three Jewels,” a “man of the Hayashi clan transferred his affairs to his heir, shaved his head . . . , [and] changed his name to Muzen.”

3. Process. “Some sort of familiar process or type of inter- action is set underway—some human activity with a predict- able sequence.”71 Muzen “looked forward to traveling here and there in his old age” and sets out on a journey to Mount Koya with his son.

4. Hints. The story provides clues that “something anoma- lous is about to occur.”72 The most obvious in “The Owl of the Three Jewels” are Muzen’s decision to spend the night in front of Kobo Daishi’s mausoleum and the riveting cry of the owl.

5. Limen. Campany’s list of liminal markers includes several that figure in “The Owl of the Three Jewels”: travel through mountains, sunset, and a gateway.73 In addition, the extraordinary historical and spiritual associations of Mount

introduction 23

Koya make it, ipso facto, a liminal place, and the mausoleum itself represents liminality.

6. Pivot. “Something distinctly odd now happens and the reader—usually joined at this point . . . by the protago- nist—becomes unmistakably aware of the strangeness of the situation.”74 Muzen, “taking out his travel-inkstone, . . . wrote down the verse by lantern light, then strained his ears in hopes of hearing the voice of the bird again, when, to his surprise, he heard instead the stern voice of a forerunner, coming from the direction of the distant temples and gradu- ally drawing closer.”

7. Climax. “The full force of the anomaly hits home to both protagonist and reader.”75 The climax of “The Owl of the Three Jewels” comes when Joha identifies Hidetsugu and the other ghosts: “It was so horrible that the hair on Muzen’s head would have stood on end, had there been any hair, and he felt as though his innards and his spirit alike were flying away into space.” The climax continues to the point where the ghosts reveal their true form as asuras and threaten Muzen and his son.

8. Response. “Some tales . . . continue by reporting the protagonist’s response” to the climax.76 In “The Owl of the Three Jewels,” Muzen produces the verse required of him and then faints.

9. Outcome. “In tales in which there is some response by the protagonist, comment is usually made on how things worked out.”77 In “The Owl of the Three Jewels,” Muzen and his son wake up, return to the capital, and seek medical treatment.

10. Impact. “Very occasionally—especially in Buddhist miracle tales and in stories concerning the origins of cults and temples—further comment is made on reactions by persons other than the protagonist, or on some later situ- ation relevant to the tale. In every case these comments concern the lasting impact made by the narrated event on a person or group of people or on the landscape.”78 “The Owl of the Three Jewels,” of course, concerns the origin

24 introduction

of Mount Koya and the legends surrounding Kobo Daishi. The story concludes: “One day as he was passing the Sanjo Bridge, Muzen thought of the Brutality Mound [containing the remains of Hidetsugu and his family] and felt his gaze being drawn toward the temple. ‘It was horrible, even in broad daylight,’ he recounted to people in the capital. The story has been recorded here just as he told it.” These sen- tences describe the lasting impact of the events at Mount Koya both on Muzen and on the landscape (in the form of the Brutality Mound). The impact on other people is sug- gested in the survival of the story as it has been passed down from Muzen.

The structure of “The Owl of the Three Jewels” thus resembles that of Chinese anomalous accounts. A similar analysis could be made of the other stories in Moonlight and Rain, all of which follow this pattern. It is characteristic of Akinari’s tales that the last three elements—response, out- come, and impact—which are often absent in Chinese sto- ries, not only are present but are developed at length (except in “The Kibitsu Cauldron,” “A Serpent’s Lust,” and “The Blue Hood,” where they are present but abbreviated). The third through seventh elements are repeated several times in “A Serpent’s Lust,” which thus might be regarded as sev- eral stories in one. The response section of “On Poverty and Wealth” is exceptionally long, consisting of Sanai’s conversa- tion with the spirit of gold.

Another way to describe the Moonlight and Rain stories is in terms of the structure of no plays, as many commentators have noted.79 Indeed, Akinari invited comparisons by using the title of a no play—Ugetsu—in the title of the collection. Four elements of no structure can be found in some or all of the stories.

1. Michiyuki. Originating in the no theater and found in other performance and literary genres as well, a michiyuki

introduction 25

(going on the road) is a literary convention in which the route, sights, and impressions of a journey are evoked with a litany of familiar place-names, often modified by makura- kotoba (pillow-words) or other epithets. In addition to pro- viding a display of beautiful rhetoric and enriching the audience’s experience by prompting the memory and imagi- nation to envision famous scenes and their associations, a michiyuki guides the reader into a world apart, where unex- pected, wondrous beings and events are likely to be encoun- tered. Three of the stories in Moonlight and Rain include con- spicuous michiyuki: Saigyo’s poetic journey at the beginning of “Shiramine,” Muzen’s journey with his son in “The Owl of the Three Jewels,” and Kaian’s journey in “The Blue Hood.” A fourth story, “The Carp of My Dreams,” includes a par- ticularly beautiful passage—Kogi’s tour of Lake Biwa—that resembles a michiyuki, although it does not serve the same structural function.

2. Shite and waki. A typical no play has two important characters: the shite (central figure) and the waki ([man at] the side). The shite is preceded on the stage by the waki, who is frequently a traveler or an itinerant monk. The waki arrives at a famous site, where he meets a local person—the shite—whom he questions about the history of the area. As the waki draws out the shite’s story, it turns out that the shite is actually the ghost of a historical figure who is still clinging to this world because of obsessive anger, desire for revenge, or love. Often the shite asks the waki to pray for his or her release from obsession so that he or she might be reborn in Amida Buddha’s Western Paradise. Characters in at least four of the stories in Moonlight and Rain resemble the waki and shite roles, in greater or lesser degrees. Saigyo, in “Shiramine,” corresponds to the waki as his michiyuki takes him to Shiramine. There he encounters the ghost of Sutoku, who corresponds to the shite, and they engage in a mondo (dialogue), a common element in no plays.80 As in a no play, Sutoku’s true form is revealed near the end of the

26 introduction

story. In “The Chrysanthemum Vow,” Samon resembles the waki insofar as he elicits a story from Soemon, who corre- sponds to the shite. Samon ceases to behave like a waki at the end of the story, however. In “The Owl of the Three Jewels,” Muzen corresponds to the waki (and his son to a wakizure [waki companion]) as he travels to Mount Koya. Hidetsugu’s ghost, of course, corresponds to the shite (and his follow- ers to shitezure), and the fact that Hidetsugu turns out to be an asura encourages the reader to recall no plays, such as Yashima, in which the shite is an asura. Finally, the itinerant monk Kaian functions as the waki in “The Blue Hood,” and the mad abbot can be thought of as the shite. The Moonlight and Rain stories are not no plays, of course, and it would be a mistake to press the waki–shite analogy too far, but the resemblance is unmistakable.

3. Dreams. In some no plays of the mugen (dream mys- tery) type, it is conceivable that the waki dozes off at the end of the first part of the play and dreams of his subsequent encounter with a ghost. This possibility exists in “Shira- mine” and “The Owl of the Three Jewels.” In “Shiramine,” Saigyo “began to doze” just before Sutoku makes his appear- ance, and the strange events in “The Owl of the Three Jew- els” take place after Muzen and his son have laid out their bedding and as they are trying to go to sleep. The central event of “The Carp of My Dreams” occurs in a dream, but parallels with mugen no are less obvious in this story than in the other two.

4. Jo-ha-kyu. The fourth structural element of no plays that is shared by the Moonlight and Rain stories is the jo-ha- kyu (introduction-development-climax) rhythm—common not only in no, but in all Japanese traditional performing arts—in which the performance begins slowly, the pace gradually quickens, and a swift, dramatic climax is reached at the end. The development, typically the longest section, also consists of three parts, resulting in five sections alto- gether. This structure is fairly clear in, for example, “The

introduction 27

Blue Hood.” In the introduction (jo), Kaian reaches Tonda and meets his host. In the first part of the development (ha), the host explains Kaian’s odd reception and the problem that has been troubling the village. Kaian responds in the second part of the development, goes to the mountain tem- ple, and meets the abbot. In the third part of the develop- ment, Kaian confronts the abbot’s madness. Finally, in the climax (kyu), Kaian returns to the temple a year later and meets the abbot again, resolving the crisis faced by both the village and the abbot. The same analysis could be applied fruitfully to “Shiramine,” “The Owl of the Three Jewels,” “The Kibitsu Cauldron,” and “A Serpent’s Lust.”81

The themes or motifs of several of the stories recall spe- cific no plays as well. “The Owl of the Three Jewels” resem- bles a shuramono (asura play), such as Yashima, in which the angry ghost of a warrior returns to the scene of his defeat. “The Reed-Choked House” employs the traditional theme of a woman who waits loyally and patiently for her husband or lover—a motif that is common in Japanese court poetry and in no plays such as Matsukaze (Wind in the Pines) and Izutsu (The Well Curb). “A Serpent’s Lust,” which explicitly alludes to the Dojoji legend, naturally recalls the no play Dojoji and its serpent-woman.82

structure of the collect ion

Contemporary publishers of short-story collections com- monly put the best—or the most appealing, exciting, or evocative—story first, in order to hook readers and keep them reading. If the publisher of Moonlight and Rain had followed this practice, he might have chosen to begin with “The Reed-Choked House,” “The Kibitsu Cauldron,” or “The Blue Hood,” rather than with the stately, poetic “Shiramine,” which opens the collection as we have it. The organization

28 introduction

of Moonlight and Rain is so unlike that with which Western readers are accustomed that Kengi Hamada, in his transla- tion, apparently found it necessary to rearrange the stories to conform more closely to Western tastes, beginning his ver- sion with “The Reed-Choked House.”83 In fact, the structure of the collection—the grouping and ordering of the stories— is complex and certainly not random.

The nine stories are arranged in five books:

Book One

“Shiramine”

“The Chrysanthemum Vow”

Book Two

“The Reed-Choked House”

“The Carp of My Dreams”

Book Three

“The Owl of the Three Jewels”

“The Kibitsu Cauldron”

Book Four

“A Serpent’s Lust”

Book Five

“The Blue Hood”

“On Poverty and Wealth”

This organization recalls two parallels: first, Teisho’s A Gar- land of Heroes and Shigeshige yawa, which likewise consist of nine stories in five books; and, second, the five-part jo-ha-kyu rhythm of no. This structure applies not only to individual plays, but also to the arrangement of the five kinds of plays into a five-play no program.84

To some extent, Moonlight and Rain can be compared with a program of no plays.85 The five types of plays and their sequence in a full program are shown in the table.

It is tempting to try to apply this program of five plays to the five books of Moonlight and Rain—to say that Book One corresponds to the first category of no plays, for example—

introduction 29

but the analogy breaks down almost immediately, since “The Chrysanthemum Vow” has little in common with a wakino or kamino, nor are “The Reed-Choked House” and “The Carp of My Dreams” at all analogous to shuramono. The five books of Moonlight and Rain do, however, parallel the five-part rhythmic structure of the no program, with a gradual heightening of pace and excitement. The stories in Book One unfold at an appropriately dignified pace, with elevated language and high-ranking characters: an eminent poet-monk and the ghost of a deified former emperor in “Shiramine” and a scholar and a samurai in “The Chrysan- themum Vow.” The excitement picks up in Book Two and continues to grow, as the status of the characters declines, through Book Four. In Book Five, the pace and excite- ment reach a climax in “The Blue Hood,” and the collec- tion ends with an auspicious prophecy of good times under the Tokugawa government, in “On Poverty and Wealth.” In addition, there are unmistakable parallels between the five types of no plays and the central characters of some of the stories and the order in which they appear. The ghost of the former emperor Sutoku, in “Shiramine,” can be thought of as a deity, insofar as all emperors were believed to be divine descendants of Amaterasu, the sun goddess, and this one was actually enshrined at Shiramine. The second story, “The Chrysanthemum Vow,” involves the ghost of a samurai, and “The Reed Choked House” focuses on a beautiful woman. With “The Carp of My Dreams” the collection departs from

Number Name Typical central character (shite)

1 wakino or kamino A deity

2 shuramono The ghost of a warrior

3 katsuramono A beautiful young woman

4 kyojomono or genzaimono A mad person or a modern person

5 kirino or ki(chiku)mono A demon or another strange creature

30 introduction

any correspondence with the subject matter of a no pro- gram, but “The Owl of the Three Jewels” resembles a shura- mono and draws the collection back toward the no pattern. “The Kibitsu Cauldron” can be seen as a combination of a katsuramono, kyojomono, and kirino, since Isora starts out as a beautiful young woman and ends up as a possessing spirit. Finally, each of the remaining stories focuses on an anomalous creature: a serpent-woman, a necrophiliac and cannibalistic monk, and the spirit of gold. The sequencing of the nine stories does, then, approximate a no program in its gradually accelerating pace and in the nature of the cen- tral characters. While the presence of the jo-ha-kyu rhythm might be explained as the automatic choice of a Japanese artist of the time, the downward progression of characters suggests a deliberate imitation of the no form.

There are other ways of looking at the organization of Moonlight and Rain.86 The most persuasive is the link- ing structure described by the prominent Akinari scholar Takada Mamoru.87

Stories 1–2. The clash of wills between a ghost and a liv- ing man in “Shiramine” is followed by the meeting of minds between a ghost and a living man in “The Chrysanthemum Vow.” (The first two stories are also linked by an interest in Confucianism and by the theme of loyalty—Saigyo’s to Sutoku, and Soemon’s and Samon’s to each other. The intimacy and loyalty that bond Saigyo to his former master, Sutoku, in “Shiramine” anticipate an even closer relation- ship between two men in “The Chrysanthemum Vow.”)

Stories 2–3. The fraternal loyalty of a ghost in “The Chry- santhemum Vow” is echoed by the marital fidelity of a ghost in “The Reed-Choked House,” in which the loyal ghost is the woman who waits, not the man who returns. (There is a link by contrast, as well, in that the man who vows to return by a certain date keeps his promise in “The Chrysan- themum Vow,” but not in “The Reed-Choked House.” The

introduction 31

parallel between the two stories is even closer if we think of Samon and Soemon as lovers: the steadfast love between two men in “The Chrysanthemum Vow” is followed by the undependability of a husband in “The Reed-Choked House.” Upper-class men of exemplary character are replaced by a pusillanimous farmer and his devoted wife. Miyagi, the ideal wife, anticipates another idealized wife, with a twist, in “The Kibitsu Cauldron,” and a mockery of the ideal wife plays a central role in “A Serpent’s Lust.”)

Stories 3–4. The image of water links “The Reed-Choked House” to “The Carp of My Dreams”: the former ends with the legend of a girl who threw herself into the water, and the latter concerns an artist who dreams that he swims about like a fish. (“The Carp of My Dreams” is a lighthearted, peaceful story with a happy ending, a cheerful interlude after the solemnity of “Shiramine” and “The Chrysanthe- mum Vow” and the pathos of “The Reed-Choked House” and before the darkness of “The Owl of the Three Jewels.” Like Saigyo, in “Shiramine,” Kogi was an eminent monk, and “The Carp of My Dreams” makes many references to Buddhist teachings. The water motif is picked up again in “A Serpent’s Lust.”)

Stories 4–5. Kogi, in “The Carp of My Dreams,” comes back from the strange world of a watery dream to tell his story; similarly, Muzen, in “The Owl of the Three Jewels,” barely returns alive from the strange world of Mount Koya and a brush with the asura realm to tell others about his experience. Daytime turns to night; fish is replaced by owl. (The stories are also linked by the prominent role that Buddhism plays in each. If Muzen dreams of his encounter with Hidetsugu, the connection becomes even closer. The implicit contrast in “The Owl of the Three Jewels” between the revered Kobo Daishi and the murderous Hidetsugu—both of them famous historical figures—echoes the contrast between Saigyo and Sutoku in “Shiramine” and anticipates that between Kaian and the mad monk in “The Blue Hood.”)

32 introduction

Stories 5–6. The story of a cruel man who fell to the asura realm, in “The Owl of the Three Jewels,” is followed, in “The Kibitsu Cauldron,” by that of a betrayed woman whose jeal- ousy turns her into an angry possessing spirit, and this time the man does not survive. (The Shinto context of “The Kib- itsu Cauldron,” as well as the amoral spirit of Isora, form a sharp contrast with the Buddhism of “Shiramine,” “The Carp of My Dreams,” and “The Owl of the Three Jewels.”)

Stories 6–7. The lascivious husband of “The Kibitsu Cauldron” is followed, in “A Serpent’s Lust,” by a lascivi- ous and jealous serpent-woman who, like the jealous wife of “The Kibitsu Cauldron,” tries to kill her husband. (The reference to serpent-women in the first paragraph of “The Kibitsu Cauldron” anticipates “A Serpent’s Lust.” Both Sho- taro, in “The Kibitsu Cauldron,” and Toyoo, in “A Serpent’s Lust,” are led by a servant girl to meet a mysterious lady at a house that turns out to be something other than what it first appears to be. In both stories, one or more wise old men tries to help: in “The Kibutsu Cauldron,” he is a yin–yang master, while in “A Serpent’s Lust,” the first is a Shinto priest; the second, an overrated Buddhist monk; and the third, a Buddhist sage. Pervasive water imagery in “A Serpent’s Lust” echoes that in “The Reed-Choked House” and “The Carp of My Dreams.”)

Stories 7–8. The destructive power of lust is an issue in “The Blue Hood,” as in “A Serpent’s Lust,” but the focus shifts from a serpent-woman to a previously upright monk who becomes a fiend, and the weak husband is replaced by a Zen “priest of great virtue.” (Buddhism returns as a central concern, as in “Shiramine,” “The Carp of My Dreams,” and “The Owl of the Three Jewels.”)

Stories 8–9. “The Blue Hood” is linked to “On Poverty and Wealth” by the important role of Chinese verse—the lines with which Kaian leads the mad abbot to enlightenment, and the prophetic lines bestowed on Sanai by the spirit of gold.

introduction 33

Stories 9–1. The last story in Moonlight and Rain, “On Pov- erty and Wealth,” is linked to the first story, “Shiramine,” since both involve a philosophical dialogue between a human and a nonhuman, and the gold spirit’s prediction of a happy future for the nation echoes, and contrasts with, Sutoku’s grim predictions of war. (Another parallel between the first and last stories is that “Shiramine” alludes to the Hogen, Heiji, and Gempei conflicts, while “On Poverty and Wealth” reviews the struggles of the Warring States and Azuchi– Momoyama periods before predicting peace and prosperity under the Tokugawa. Tributes to the Tokugawa are included in the “Preface” and “The Owl of the Three Jewels” as well.)

At least two other patterns in the structure of Moonlight and Rain are noteworthy. First, anomalous beings and events grow more dangerous as the collection progresses and then less threatening again. They present no danger to Saigyo, Samon, Katsushiro, and Kogi, in the first four stories. In the fifth, however, Muzen is nearly killed, and Shotaro dies in the sixth. The danger recedes slightly in the seventh story, in which Tomiko is killed but Toyoo escapes, and the eighth, in which Kaian is threatened but survives because of his great virtue. Danger is not an element in the ninth story. The other notable pattern is the contrast between a steadfast character and an undependable, erratic, or vicious one. The motif is established in “Shiramine,” with Saigyo’s unshakable loyalty and Sutoku’s thirst for revenge, and is repeated in all the stories except “The Carp of My Dreams” and “On Poverty and Wealth.” Further, the loyalty that Samon and Soemon show for each other in “The Chrysanthemum Vow” con- trasts with the weakness of the central male characters in “The Reed-Choked House,” “The Kibitsu Cauldron,” and “A Serpent’s Lust,” and the theme is driven home with the warning in “The Chrysanthemum Vow”: “Bond not with a shallow man.”

34 introduction

About the Translation

Tales of Moonlight and Rain has already attracted an impres- sive company of translators and adapters, and yet it is a tru- ism that English translations of the work have been inad- equate. Takada understated the problem: “Readers of Ugetsu Monogatari in translation may not be able fully to grasp the classic beauty of the . . . original’s literary style, its elegant phraseology, and its precise mode of expression, replete with concatenations yet without redundancy.”88 To reflect adequately in translation the style and tone of the original text is a tall order. Akinari was a great master of Japanese, but few of us who translate from Japanese are great masters of English. His prose is terse, elliptical, sinewy, highly lit- erary, allusive, scholarly, dignified, elegant, and sometimes obscure—never slack or insipid. His is a neoclassical, self- conscious, quirky style, with many usages borrowed from archaic Japanese texts and Chinese sources, resulting in a rich, dense text that is meant to be read slowly and savored. I have tried to let the text speak for itself as directly as possible, rather than embroidering it with interpretations and expla- nations. Some of the existing translations strike me as wordy and insufficiently dignified, because they have gone too far in accommodating the Western reader and so fail to convey the tone, pace, and elegance of the original. Leon M. Zolbrod wanted his translation “to read as if the original were written in common English.”89 In this, he echoed Dryden: “I have endeavoured to make Virgil speak such English as he would himself have spoken, if he had been born in England, and in this present age.”90 Commonsensical as it sounds, this is an impossible goal.91 In any case, Akinari certainly did not write in common Japanese.

Translators of Moonlight and Rain who attempted to “[leave] the reader alone as much as possible and [move] the writer toward the reader”92—in other words, to “naturalize” Akinari’s prose into modern English—have vitiated the text.

introduction 35

In my translation, I have tried to leave Akinari alone as much as possible without doing violence to my mother tongue. I have looked for ways to convey in English the distinctive qualities of Akinari’s prose more successfully than some of my predecessors have done, even though I am aware of my limitations as an English stylist and of the ultimate impossibility of a close approximation. Akinari’s original (as opposed to the modern, edited texts on which we base our translations) presents each tale as a steady narrative flow, uninterrupted by paragraphs or quotation marks and only occasionally guided by punctuation. One effect of this pre- sentation (which was common at the time) is to blur the dis- tinction between narrative and dialogue: early editions give the impression that both narrative and dialogue are told in the voice of the narrator. I considered dispensing with quo- tations marks and other modern techniques for setting off dialogue, but finally decided that this would make the trans- lation too odd and remote for the tastes of most readers. For the same reason, I have also used English tenses, despite the advice of those who emphasize the inherent differences between Japanese and English narrative.93 Probably these compromises will satisfy no one, but I hope that my transla- tion will bring readers of English a little closer to the tone, texture, and excitement of Akinari’s masterpiece.

Some readers may think that I have accepted Vladimir Nabokov’s advice to provide “copious footnotes, footnotes reaching up like skyscrapers.”94 In the case of Moonlight and Rain, I believe that extensive notes are desirable to explain exotic references and to demonstrate the rich intertextuality of the stories. Even so, the notes are far from exhaustive. I have emphasized sources that readers are most likely to be familiar with, such as The Tale of Genji, and secondary mate- rial in English. I hope that the notes will be sufficient for the scholarly reader and not too tedious for the casual. Informa- tion that is immediately useful for understanding the text is provided in footnotes; longer notes, of interest primarily to

36 introduction

students and scholars, appear at the end of each story. Truly comprehensive notes can be found in Uzuki Hiroshi’s indis- pensable Ugetsu monogatari hyoshaku. Many of my notes paraphrase Uzuki’s.

Rather than inflating the footnotes further, I have pro- vided an introduction for each story, with information on its title, characters, places, time, background, and affinities. I have presented this information in a format commonly used in no texts, partly because it is a convenient arrangement and partly because Tales of Moonlight and Rain reminds me of a collection of no plays.

For English equivalents of court titles, I am indebted to William H. McCullough and Helen Craig McCullough’s A Tale of Flowering Fortunes.95

Personal names and ages are given as in the original: family name precedes given name, and the calendar years in which a character has lived are counted, rather than the number of full years elapsed since the day of birth. The pre- modern Japanese calendar consisted of twelve lunar months, of which the first three coincided with spring, the next three with summer, and so on. The Seventh Month, therefore, cor- responds not to July but to the first month of autumn.

The translation is based on the text, notes, and commentary in Uzuki’s Ugetsu monogatari hyoshaku. I have also referred to Ueda Akinari shu, edited by Nakamura Yukihiko;96 Hanabusa soshi, Nishiyama monogatari, Ugetsu monogatari, Harusame monogatari, edited by Nakamura Yukihiko, Takada Mamoru, and Nakamura Hiroyasu; and the introductions, translations, and notes in Wilfred Whitehouse’s “‘Shiramine’: A Transla- tion with Comments” and “Ugetsu Monogatari: Tales of a Clouded Moon,” Dale Saunders’s “Ugetsu Monogatari, or Tales of Moonlight and Rain,” Kengi Hamada’s Tales of Moonlight and Rain: Japanese Gothic Tales, and Leon M. Zolbrod’s Ugetsu Monogatari: Tales of Moonlight and Rain. The translation would not have been feasible without the tireless efforts of Japanese scholars who have made the text as accessible as it is.

introduction 37

The woodcuts that accompany each story are from the edition of 1776. All the translations, including those in the notes, are my own unless otherwise indicated.

N O T E S

1. Roger Ebert, “Misguided Ambition, Forbidden Passion,” Chicago

Sun-Times, May 9, 2004.

2. See, for example, Nakano Mitsutoshi, “The Role of Traditional Aes-

thetics,” trans. Maria Flutsch, in C. Andrew Gerstle, ed., 18th Century

Japan: Culture and Society (Sydney: Allen & Unwin, 1989), p. 124.

3. Nakano, “Role of Traditional Aesthetics,” p. 125.

4. C. Andrew Gerstle, “Introduction,” in Gerstle, ed., 18th Century Japan,

p. xii.

5. Gerstle, “Introduction,” p. xii.

6. Conrad Totman, Early Modern Japan (Berkeley: University of Califor-

nia Press, 1993), p. 354.

7. Since a full biography of Akinari is available in English, I offer

only an overview of his life here. For a thorough treatment of his

life and works, see Blake Morgan Young, Ueda Akinari (Vancouver:

University of British Columbia Press, 1982). Other useful English-

language sources on Akinari include Donald Keene, World Within

Walls: Japanese Literature of the Pre-Modern Era, 1600–1867 (New York:

Holt, 1976), pp. 371–395; the introductions to Wilfrid Whitehouse,

trans., “‘Shiramine’: A Translation with Comments,” Monumenta

Nipponica 1, no. 1 (1938): 242–258, and “Ugetsu Monogatari: Tales of a

Clouded Moon,” Monumenta Nipponica 1, no. 2 (1938): 549–567, and

4, no. 1 (1941): 166–191; to Dale Saunders, trans., “Ugetsu Monoga-

tari, or Tales of Moonlight and Rain,” Monumenta Nipponica 21, nos.

1–2 (1966): 171–202; and to Leon M. Zolbrod, trans. and ed., Ugetsu

Monogatari: Tales of Moonlight and Rain: A Complete English Version

of the Eighteenth-Century Japanese Collection of Tales of the Supernatu-

ral (Vancouver: University of British Columbia Press, 1974); Takata

[Takada] Mamoru, “Ugetsu Monogatari: A Critical Interpretation,” in

Kengi Hamada, trans., Tales of Moonlight and Rain: Japanese Gothic

Tales (Tokyo: University of Tokyo Press, 1971; New York: Colum-

bia University Press, 1972), pp. xxi–xxix; Haruo Shirane, ed., Early

Modern Japanese Literature: An Anthology, 1600–1900 (New York:

38 introduction

Columbia University Press, 2002), pp. 563–567; Noriko T. Reider,

Tales of the Supernatural in Early Modern Japan: Kaidan, Akinari,

Ugetsu Monogatari, Japanese Studies, vol. 16 (Lewiston, N.Y.: Mellen,

2002); James T. Araki, “A Critical Approach to the Ugetsu Monogatari,”

Monumenta Nipponica 22, nos. 1–2 (1967): 49–64; Susanna Fessler,

“The Nature of the Kami: Ueda Akinari and Tandai Shoshin Roku,” Monumenta Nipponica 51, no. 1 (1996): 1–15; and Dennis Washburn,

“Ghostwriters and Literary Haunts: Subordinating Ethics to Art in

Ugetsu Monogatari,” Monumenta Nipponica 45, no. 1 (1990): 39–74.

8. Totman, Early Modern Japan, pp. 302, 353. On the Kaitokudo, see also Tetsuo Najita, Visions of Virtue in Tokugawa Japan: The Kaitokudo, Mer- chant Academy of Osaka (Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1987).

9. Young, Ueda Akinari, p. 12.

10. On kokugaku, see, for example, Shirane, ed., Early Modern Japanese

Literature, pp. 599–630; and Peter Nosco, Remembering Paradise:

Nativism and Nostalgia in Eighteenth-Century Japan, Harvard Yen-

ching Monograph Series, no. 31 (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard Univer-

sity, Council on East Asian Studies, 1990).

11. On bunjin, see, for example, Lawrence E. Marceau, Takebe Ayatari: A

Bunjin Bohemian in Early Modern Japan (Ann Arbor: Center for Japa-

nese Studies, University of Michigan, 2004), pp. 1–21; Mark Morris,

“Buson and Shiki: Part One,” Harvard Journal of Asiatic Studies 44,

no. 2 (1984): 381–425, and “Group Portrait with Artist: Yosa Buson

and His Patrons,” in Gerstle, ed., 18th Century Japan, pp. 87–105; and

Patricia J. Graham, Tea of the Sages: The Art of Sencha (Honolulu: Uni-

versity of Hawai’i Press, 1998).

12. Inoue Yasushi, Ugetsu monogatari ron—gensen to shudai (Tokyo:

Kasama Shoin, 1999), p. 3.

13. For fuller discussions of Akinari’s ukiyo zoshi, see Young, Ueda Aki- nari, pp. 16–33; and Keene, World Within Walls, pp. 372–375.

14. Young, Ueda Akinari, p. 79.

15. On the debate, see Young, Ueda Akinari, pp. 78–87.

16. On ga and zoku in the eighteenth century, see Nakano, “Role of Tra-

ditional Aesthetics.”

17. Young, Ueda Akinari, p. 109.

18. Excerpts from A Record of Daring and Prudence are in Fessler, “Nature

of the Kami,” pp. 8–15.

19. Graham, Tea of the Sages, pp. 22, 87–90, 92.

introduction 39

20. Barry Jackman, trans., Tales of the Spring Rain (Tokyo: University of

Tokyo Press, 1975; New York: Columbia University Press, 1979). See

also Young, Ueda Akinari, pp. 128–139.

21. Quoted in Nakano, “Role of Traditional Aesthetics,” p. 127.

22. Marceau, Takebe Ayatari, p. 103.

23. Nakano, “Role of Traditional Aesthetics,” p. 129.

24. Nakano, “Role of Traditional Aesthetics,” p. 128.

25. Totman, Early Modern Japan, p. 366.

26. On Akinari’s desire to change zoku into ga, see also Morita Kiro, Ueda Akinari bungei no kenkyu (Osaka: Izumi Shoin, 2003), pp. 583– 585. Akinari was not the first bunjin to make this transformation in

fiction. In his preface to Nishiyama monogatari (A Tale of the Western

Hills), Kinryu Keiyu (1712–1782) praised Takebe Ayatari (also a bun- jin) for his ability to “achieve ga while adhering to zoku” (Nakamura

Yukihiko, Takada Mamoru, and Nakamura Hiroyasu, eds., Hanabusa

soshi, Nishiyama monogatari, Ugetsu monogatari, Harusame mono- gatari, Nihon koten bungaku zenshu, vol. 48 [Tokyo: Shogakukan, 1973], p. 251). Keiyu’s preface and Nishiyama monogatari have been translated by Blake Morgan Young: Takebe Ayatari, “A Tale of the

Western Hills: Takebe Ayatari’s Nishiyama Monogatari,” Monumenta

Nipponica 37, no. 1 (1982): 77–121.

27. Young, Ueda Akinari, p. 88.

28. Totman, Early Modern Japan, p. 363.

29. Totman, Early Modern Japan, p. 363. See also Keene, World Within

Walls, p. 388.

30. Morita, Ueda Akinari bungei no kenkyu, p. 59. 31. Nakamura Yukihiko, introduction to Hanabusa soshi, in Nakamura,

Takada, and Nakamura, eds., Hanabusa soshi, Nishiyama monogatari, Ugetsu monogatari, Harusame monogatari, pp. 37–38; Shirane, ed.,

Early Modern Japanese Literature, pp. 563–564.

32. Details in this paragraph come from Young, Ueda Akinari, p. 32; and

Morita, Ueda Akinari bungei no kenkyu, p. 57. 33. Morita lists nine persuasive reasons in Ueda Akinari bungei no ken-

kyu, p. 58. Takada Mamoru argues that the whole collection was com- pleted in 1768, in “Kaisetsu” for Ugetsu monogatari, in Nakamura,

Takada, and Nakamura, eds., Hanabusa soshi, Nishiyama monogatari, Ugetsu monogatari, Harusame monogatari, pp. 46–48.

34. Morita, Ueda Akinari bungei no kenkyu, pp. 58–59.

40 introduction

35. The no play Ugetsu has not been published in English translation. 36. Reider, Tales of the Supernatural in Early Modern Japan, p. 138. On

the influence of Chinese fiction in the eighteenth century and Aki-

nari’s sources, see the extensive notes and commentaries throughout

Uzuki Hiroshi, Ugetsu monogatari hyoshaku, Nihon koten hyoshaku zenchushaku sosho (Tokyo: Kadokawa, 1969), and, in English, Mar- ceau, Takebe Ayatari, p. 12; Keene, World Within Walls, pp. 375–378;

and Zolbrod, trans. and ed., Ugetsu Monogatari, pp. 61–72.

37. On intertextuality in The Tale of Genji, see Haruo Shirane, The Bridge

of Dreams: A Poetics of The Tale of Genji (Stanford, Calif.: Stanford

University Press, 1987), esp. pp. 17–23. On honkadori, see Robert H.

Brower and Earl Miner, Japanese Court Poetry (Stanford, Calif.: Stan-

ford University Press, 1961), pp. 14–15, 286–291.

38. Most modern readers depend on footnotes, but Akinari’s intended

audience would have recognized many of his borrowings without an

editor’s assistance.

39. Reider, Tales of the Supernatural in Early Modern Japan, p. 90.

40. Robert Ford Campany, Strange Writing: Anomaly Accounts in Early

Medieval China, SUNY Series in Chinese Philosophy and Culture

(Albany: State University of New York Press, 1996), pp. 270–271.

41. Uzuki, Ugetsu monogatari hyoshaku. 42. Keene, World Within Walls, p. 383.

43. Keene, World Within Walls, p. 379.

44. In the subtitle of Hamada, trans., Tales of Moonlight and Rain.

45. In the subtitle of Zolbrod, trans. and ed., Ugetsu Monogatari; and the

title of Reider, Tales of the Supernatural in Early Modern Japan, p. 1.

46. Reider, Tales of the Supernatural in Early Modern Japan, p. 7.

47. According to Rania Huntington, “Use of the term ‘supernatural’ in

the Chinese context is problematic, because foxes and ghosts were

not seen as distinct from the natural world” (Alien Kind: Foxes and

Late Imperial Chinese Narrative [Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard Univer-

sity Asia Center, 2003], p. 2, n. 3).

48. Young, Ueda Akinari, pp. 48–50; Fessler, “Nature of the Kami,” passim;

Reider, Tales of the Supernatural in Early Modern Japan, pp. 46–52.

49. Christine Brooke-Rose, A Rhetoric of the Unreal: Studies in Narrative

and Structure, Especially of the Fantastic (Cambridge: Cambridge Uni-

versity Press, 1981), p. 63. See also Tzvetan Todorov, The Fantastic: A

Structural Approach to a Literary Genre, trans. Richard Howard (Cleve-

land: Press of Case Western Reserve University, 1973).

introduction 41

50. Books on Chinese literature that are useful in a study of kaidan

include S. Y. Kao, ed., Classical Chinese Tales of the Supernatural and

the Fantastic: Selections from the Third to the Tenth Century (Bloom-

ington: Indiana University Press, 1985); Judith T. Zeitlin, Historian

of the Strange: Pu Songling and the Chinese Classical Tale (Stanford,

Calif.: Stanford University Press, 1993); and Campany, Strange Writ-

ing. Zeitlin defines “the strange” as “a cultural construct created and

constantly renewed through writing and reading; moreover, it is a

psychological effect produced through literary or artistic means. In

this sense, the concept of the strange differs from our notions of the

supernatural, fantastic, or marvelous, all of which are to some extent

predicated on the impossibility of a narrated event in the lived world

outside the text. This opposition between the possible and the impos-

sible has been the basis of most contemporary Western theories of

the fantastic, most notably Tzvetan Todorov’s influential study” (His-

torian of the Strange, p. 6).

51. Pat Fister, “Tengu, the Mountain Goblin,” in Stephen Addiss, ed.,

Japanese Ghosts and Demons: Art of the Supernatural (New York: Bra-

ziller, in association with the Spencer Museum of Art, University of

Kansas, 1985), p. 105.

52. For the text of one of these edicts, see Fister, “Tengu,” p. 110.

53. Otsu-e (Otsu prints) were hand-colored woodblock prints sold as souvenirs to travelers in Otsu, on the edge of Lake Biwa, in Shiga Prefecture.

54. Juliann Wolfgram, “Oni: The Japanese Demon,” in Addiss, ed., Japa-

nese Ghosts and Demons, p. 94.

55. Campany, Strange Writing, pp. 237–271.

56. Campany, Strange Writing, p. 266.

57. Campany, Strange Writing, p. 250.

58. Campany’s “human/animal” (Strange Writing, p. 251).

59. Campany’s “apparent/real” (Strange Writing, pp. 253–254). Since “A

Serpent’s Lust” is adapted from a Chinese story, it is not surprising

that it fits Campany’s description perfectly: “an apparent woman or

man . . . seduces the opposite-sex protagonist of the tale, then trans-

forms into her or his ‘true form’—some species of animal” (Strange

Writing, p. 254).

60. Campany, Strange Writing, pp. 259, 260.

61. Campany, Strange Writing, p. 265.

62. Campany, Strange Writing, p. 261.

63. Campany, Strange Writing, pp. 263–264.

64. Campany, Strange Writing, p. 264.

65. Campany, Strange Writing, pp. 321–328.

66. On Akinari’s travels, see Young, Ueda Akinari, pp. 10, 16, 70–74, 76.

67. Campany, Strange Writing, p. 9.

68. One of the social functions of fantastic literature, according to Todo-

rov, is that it allows for the treatment of forbidden themes, among

which he lists necrophilia (Fantastic, p. 158). The same could be said

for the function of setting a story at a geographical and chronological

distance.

69. Campany, Strange Writing, pp. 224–230.

70. Campany, Strange Writing, p. 224.

71. Campany, Strange Writing, p. 225.

72. Campany, Strange Writing, p. 225.

73. Campany, Strange Writing, p. 225.

74. Campany, Strange Writing, pp. 225–226.

75. Campany, Strange Writing, p. 226.

76. Campany, Strange Writing, p. 229.

77. Campany, Strange Writing, p. 229.

78. Campany, Strange Writing, pp. 229–230.

79. Virtually all Japanese commentators have pointed out affinities

between individual stories and no. In English-language studies, paral- lels between no plays and individual stories are noted in Araki, “Criti- cal Approach to the Ugetsu Monogatari,” pp. 61, 62, 63; J. Thomas

Rimer, Modern Japanese Fiction and Its Traditions: An Introduction

(Princeton N.J.: Princeton University Press, 1978), pp. 134–136;

Washburn, “Ghostwriters and Literary Haunts,” p. 44; and Shirane,

ed., Early Modern Japanese Literature, p. 567.

80. As Washburn points out, Saigyo is far more assertive than is a typical waki in no (“Ghostwriters and Literary Haunts,” p. 44).

81. Rimer draws attention to the jo-ha-kyu pacing in “The Kibitsu Caul- dron,” in Modern Japanese Fiction and Its Traditions, p. 135.

82. The parallels of “The Reed-Choked House” and “A Serpent’s Lust”

with no are mentioned in Shirane, ed., Early Modern Japanese Litera- ture, p. 567.

83. In Tales of Moonlight and Rain, Hamada also assigned titles of his own

invention to the stories, which he arranged in this order (with my

versions of the titles): “The Reed-Choked House,” “A Serpent’s Lust,”

“Shiramine,” “The Owl of the Three Jewels,” “The Kibitsu Cauldron,”

42 introduction

“The Chrysanthemum Vow,” “The Carp of My Dreams,” “The Blue

Hood,” and “On Poverty and Wealth.”

84. The grouping of plays into five categories developed in the eighteenth

century, according to Earl Miner, Hiroko Odagiri, and Robert E. Mor-

rell, The Princeton Companion to Classical Japanese Literature (Prince-

ton, N.J.: Princeton University Press, 1985), p. 308.

85. The comparison has been suggested by Zolbrod in the introduction

to his translation of Ugetsu Monogatari, pp. 74–75.

86. Morita summarizes other Japanese scholars’ approaches to the ques-

tion of structure in Ueda Akinari bungei no kenkyu, pp. 550–554, after offering his own analysis on pp. 535–550.

87. The rest of this paragraph summarizes Takada’s analysis (with my

supplementary comments in parentheses) in “Kaisetsu” for Ugetsu

monogatari, pp. 50–53.

88. Takata, “Ugetsu Monogatari,” p. xxi. Along the same lines, Araki wrote,

“Those in the West who have read the Ugetsu monogatari in transla-

tion may have felt that some of the tales are curiously composed,

and may have questioned their excellence” (“Critical Approach to

the Ugetsu Monogatari,” p. 49); Zolbrod argued that “one can hardly

claim that the tales have been available [in English translation] in

a suitable form for the general public” (Ugetsu Monogatari, p. 82);

and Keene noted that “it probably would not occur to anyone reading

‘Shiramine’ in translation that Akinari was a writer of the first qual-

ity, considered by the Japanese to be worthy of a lifetime’s research”

(World Within Walls, p. 381).

89. Zolbrod, trans. and ed., Ugetsu Monogatari, p. 83.

90. John Dryden, “On Translation,” in Rainer Schulte and John Biguenet,

eds., Theories of Translation: An Anthology of Essays from Dryden to Der-

rida (Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1992), p. 26.

91. According to Friedrich Schleiermacher, “Indeed, the goal of trans-

lating in such a way as the author would have written originally in

the language of the translation is not only unattainable but is also

futile and empty in itself” (“On the Different Methods of Translat-

ing,” trans. Waltraud Bartscht, in Schulte and Biguenet, eds., Theories

of Translation, p. 50).

92. Schleiermacher, “On the Different Methods of Translating,” p. 42.

93. See, for example, H. Richard Okada, Figures of Resistance: Language,

Poetry, and Narrating in The Tale of Genji and Other Mid-Heian Texts

(Durham, N.C.: Duke University Press, 1991).

introduction 43

94. Vladimir Nabokov, “Problems of Translation: Onegin in English,” in

Schulte and Biguenet, eds., Theories of Translation, p. 143.

95. William H. McCullough and Helen Craig McCullough, trans., A Tale

of Flowering Fortunes: Annals of Japanese Aristocratic Life in the Heian

Period (Stanford, Calif.: Stanford University Press, 1980), vol. 2, pp.

789–831.

96. Nakamura Yukihiko, ed., Ueda Akinari shu, Nihon koten bungaku tai- kei, vol. 56 (Tokyo: Iwanami, 1968).

44 introduction

tales of moonlight and rain

PREFACE

The Preface is written in kambun, or Japanese-style Classical Chinese. This practice was common in premodern Japanese texts, especially during the early modern period, when interest in Chinese literature reached new heights. The style afforded an author the opportunity to show that he was both erudite and au courant. Akinari’s publications before Tales of Moon- light and Rain were, however, written entirely in Japanese. Composing the Preface in kambun might have been a way to signal the greater seriousness of the work that follows.1

The Preface opens with references to two of the greatest classics of Chinese and Japanese fiction: Shuihu zhuan and Genji monogatari. The first, written in the fourteenth cen- tury in colloquial Chinese and attributed to Shi Nai’an and Luo Guanzhong (both fl. before 1400), has been translated by Pearl S. Buck (as All Men Are Brothers), J. H. Jackson (as Water Margin), Sidney Shapiro (as Outlaws of the Marsh), and John Dent-Young and Alex Dent-Young (as The Marshes of Mount Liang). Genji monogatari, written in the early elev- enth century in colloquial Japanese by Murasaki Shikibu (976?–1015?), has been translated as The Tale of Genji by Arthur Waley, Edward G. Seidensticker, and Royall Tyler. The

unhappy fates of Luo and Murasaki, as recounted by Akinari, are based on old legends. In the Confucian view, which held that literature should be didactic and edifying, the authors’ “wrongful actions” consisted of leading readers astray by writing fiction.

Akinari therefore adopts a modest tone in the Preface, dis- paraging his “scribbled” stories as “idle,” “flawed,” “baseless,” and unbelievable, especially in comparison with the mas- terpieces of his two illustrious predecessors. It is tempting, however, to conclude that Akinari’s modesty is ironic; that he wanted his work to be considered in the same league as Water Margin and The Tale of Genji; that he hints at retribution in the present, in the form of his crippled fingers; and that his offspring may well turn out to be deformed.2 Akinari’s choice of one Chinese and one Japanese precedent is appropriate, since he drew heavily on both Chinese and Japanese sources in writing the stories in Tales of Moonlight and Rain. The Pref- ace serves to signal this borrowing to his readers.

Akinari lauds the Tokugawa regime, which governed Japan during his lifetime, with a reference to “a time of peace and contentment.” He compliments the regime again at the open- ing of “The Owl of the Three Jewels,” the fifth story, and at the conclusion of “On Poverty and Wealth,” the last story in the collection. Maybe government censors concentrated on beginnings and endings, as many readers do to this day. The mention of wars in three other stories—“Shiramine,” “The Chrysanthemum Vow,” and “The Reed-Choked House”—also served to remind Akinari ’s readers that they lived in a peace- ful era. Akinari’s praise for his rulers was probably sincere.

Akinari used the pen name Senshi Kijin in none of his other works. Senshi is written with characters that signify “clipping limbs” or “pruning,” but also suggest “clipped fingers,” an allusion to Akinari’s two fingers deformed by smallpox when he was in his fifth year. Kijin can mean “an eccentric,” but here probably signifies “a cripple.” Thus the possible meanings of the pen name range from “an eccen-

48 preface

tric who prunes branches” to (more pertinently) “a cripple with clipped fingers.” The pen name also alludes to Qu You’s Jiandeng xinhua (New Tales After Trimming the Lamp, 1378), since the first character, read sen in Japanese, is also the first character in the title of the Chinese story collection.

Master Luo compgenerations of deaf-mutes. Lady Murasaki wrote The Tale of Genji and fell for a time into a dreadful realm.3 No doubt it was for their wrongful actions that they suffered so. Look at their writings: each depicts many inge- nious scenes and stories; their silences and songs are true to life;4 rising and falling, their language rolls smoothly along; and so their work resonates like fine music in the reader’s heart. Even after a thousand years, the events of those times show clearly in the mirror of the present. I, too, have scrib- bled down some idle tales for a time of peace and content- ment. A pheasant cries, dragons fight:5 I know that these tales are flawed and baseless; no one who skims them will find them believable. How, then, can I expect retribution, whether in the form of harelips or flat noses?6 In the late spring of Meiwa 5, on a night with a misty moon after the rains have cleared, I compose this at my window and give it to the bookseller. The title is “Tales of Moonlight and Rain.” Written by Senshi Kijin.

N O T E S

1. Morita Kiro, Ueda Akinari bungei no kenkyu (Osaka: Izumi Shoin, 2003), p. 61.

preface 49

Image has been suppressed

2. This is the view of Uzuki Hiroshi, Ugetsu monogatari hyoshaku, Nihon koten hyoshaku zenchushaku sosho (Tokyo: Kadokawa, 1969), pp. 17–18; and Morita, Ueda Akinari bungei no kenkyu, pp. 60–62.

3. “for a time”: reflects a legend that Murasaki Shikibu was rescued by

memorial services sponsored by her admirers.

“dreadful realm” (akushu): in Buddhism, people who had commit-

ted bad actions were thought to be reborn in one of the three most

undesirable realms of the Six Realms: hell, the lowest (jigoku); the

realm of hungry ghosts; and the realm of beasts.

4. “silences and songs”: style, rhythm, and tone.

5. “A pheasant cries, dragons fight”: examples of exceptionally strange

stories, drawn from the Confucian classics Shu Jing (Book of Docu-

ments) and I Jing (Book of Changes), respectively.

6. That is, “I do not expect my descendants to suffer deformities in ret-

ribution, since I admit that my stories are weird and baseless and so

will not deceive anyone, as Luo’s and Murasaki Shikibu’s writings

have done.”

50 preface

t itle

The title, “Shiramine” (White Peak), refers to a mountain in the coastal village of Matsuyama, now part of the city of Sakade, Kagawa Prefecture (formerly, Sanuki Province), on the island of Shikoku. To a knowledgeable reader, it evokes the tragic story of Emperor Sutoku, who was banished to Shira- mine, where he died, was buried, and finally was enshrined.

characters

There are only two characters in “Shiramine,” both men who are important historical figures.

The first is the revered poet-monk Saigyo (1118–1190), born Sato Norikiyo. In his youth, he served Emperors Toba and Sutoku as a palace guard, but he took Buddhist vows and became a monk in 1140, initially with the name En’i. He is remembered for his extensive travels in Japan and, especially, for his remarkable poetry. His work appears in his personal collection, Sankashu (Poems of a Mountain Home),1 and in imperial anthologies, especially the great Shinkokin-

BOOK ONE

SHIRAMINE

52 book one

shu (New Collection of Ancient and Modern Poems, early thir- teenth century). Many stories and legends have accrued to his name over the years.

The second character is the abdicated, exiled emperor Sutoku (1119–1164, r. 1123–1141). After his abdication, he was referred to as the new retired emperor (shin’in), to distin- guish him from his father, Retired Emperor Toba (1103–1156, r. 1107–1123).

places

On Shiramine, see “Title.” “Shiramine” begins with a michiyuki (going on the road),

in which a journey is evoked with familiar place-names, most of which had acquired the status of utamakura (poetic sites)—place-names used frequently in poetry and listed in handbooks of poetic composition. The michiyuki begins with Osaka Barrier, situated on Mount Osaka, between Yamashiro and Omi Provinces (Kyoto and Shiga Prefectures). It was the first barrier to be encountered by a traveler heading east from Kyoto, the capital. Mention of the Osaka Barrier signals to the reader that the world of the story lies in the provinces, far from the familiar, civilized capital. The route progresses to the east and north of Kyoto, along the Tokaido (highway along the Pacific coast between Kyoto and Edo) and beyond, and then doubles back and heads to the west of the capital, to Shikoku. All the place-names are utamakura:

Narumi Shore: coastline, now swallowed up by the south-

eastern part of the city of Nagoya.

Mount Fuji: although now dormant, an active volcano through

much of history.

Ukishimagahara: marsh in Suruga Province (Shizuoka Pre-

fecture).

Kiyomi Barrier: in Suruga Province.

shiramine 53

Oiso and Koiso: towns in Sagami Province (Kanagawa Pre- fecture).

Musashino: plain on which greater Tokyo stands. I have fol-

lowed Edward G. Seidensticker’s example in translating

murasaki (a gromwell [Lithospermum erythrorhizon]) as

“lavender.”2

Shiogama: in Rikuzen Province (Miyagi Prefecture), near

Matsushima, which is said to be one of the three most

beautiful spots in Japan.

Kisagata: inlet on the Sea of Japan, in Ugo Province (Akita

Prefecture).

Sano: in Ueno Province (Gumma Prefecture). A funabashi

(boat bridge) was constructed by tying boats together, side

by side, across a river, and laying planks on top of them.

Kiso: in Shinano Province (Nagano Prefecture).

Naniwa: old name for Settsu Province, the area around what

are now the cities of Osaka and Kobe.

Suma: in Settsu Province, in what is now the city of Kobe.

Akashi: west of Suma, in Harima Province (Hyogo Prefec- ture). Suma and Akashi are famous as the settings and

titles of chapters 12 and 13 of The Tale of Genji.

Mio Hill (Miozaka): in the northern part of the city of Sakade,

now called Mizuozaka.

t ime

Autumn of 1168 (Ninnan 3).

background

The dramatic historical events in the background of “Shira- mine” would have been familiar to Akinari’s readers through the chronicle Hogen monogatari (Tale of the Disorder in Hogen, 1219–1220?) and many other sources, including plays and

54 book one

legends; but the events are complicated and perhaps hard to follow for contemporary readers, whether Japanese or West- ern. The disorder began in 1141, with the decision by Retired Emperor Toba to force Emperor Sutoku, his eldest son and successor, to abdicate in favor of another son, Sutoku’s half brother Narihito (whom Akinari mistakenly calls Toshihito). According to Tale of the Disorder in Hogen, “It was shocking to force the previous emperor to retire, although he had no special incapacity. . . . In truth, he left the Throne against his will.”3 Narihito became Emperor Konoe at the age of three, with Toba governing on his behalf. When Konoe died in 1155, a disagreement arose over the succession. New Retired Emperor Sutoku—and many others at court—assumed that Sutoku’s son Shigehito would succeed Konoe as emperor, but instead Toba unexpectedly elevated his own fourth son, Masahito, to become Emperor Go-Shirakawa (1127–1192, r. 1155–1158). It was rumored that Bifukumon’in, Toba’s con- sort and Konoe’s mother, suspected that her son had died because of a curse from Sutoku and persuaded Toba to bypass Shigehito in favor of Masahito.

When Toba died in 1156, the first year of Hogen, Sutoku thought that he saw his opportunity. Resentful that he and his line had been shut out of the imperial succession, he led a revolt, known as the Hogen Insurrection, against Go- Shirakawa; but his uprising was quickly suppressed, and he was banished to Matsuyama, where he died in exile eight years later. In “Shiramine,” Sutoku takes credit for two other conflicts as well. He looks back to the first of these, which occurred during his exile, and he predicts the sec- ond, which began twelve years after Saigyo’s visit in 1168 to Sutoku’s grave.

The first conflict is the Heiji Insurrection, a brief war that began and ended in the last month of lunar 1159, the first year of Heiji (January 1160 in the Gregorian calendar). Fujiwara Nobuyori (1133–1159), a favorite of Go-Shirakawa,

shiramine 55

had been promoted repeatedly, despite his mediocrity, and aspired to the high position of major captain of the impe- rial bodyguard (konoe no taisho); but he was thwarted by Fuji- wara Shinzei, whose lay name was Michinori (1106–1159), a scholarly, unscrupulous official who served Emperors Toba, Sutoku, Konoe, and Nijo (r. 1158–1165) and who was espe- cially close to Go-Shirakawa. Nobuyori responded by con- spiring with Minamoto no Yoshitomo (1123–1160), who had supported Go-Shirakawa during the Hogen Insurrection, in a plot to seize power. Although Nobuyori succeeded in killing his nemesis Shinzei, the coup failed, Nobuyori was executed, and Taira no Kiyomori (1133–1181) emerged as the most powerful figure in Japan. According to legend, the Heiji Insurrection was caused by Sutoku’s vengeful spirit. In 1191 Go-Shirakawa ordered that a shrine be built next to Sutoku’s grave in order to placate his spirit. A branch of the Shiramine Shrine stands in Kyoto.

The second conflict is the epochal Gempei (Minamoto– Taira) War of 1180 to 1185. Minamoto no Yoritomo (1147– 1199), the third son of Yoshitomo, had been spared after the Heiji Insurrection and, in 1180, raised an army in eastern Japan to attack the rival Taira clan, headed by Kiyomori. At the same time, Yoritomo’s cousin Minamoto (Kiso) no Yoshi- naka (1154–1184) raised an army in northern Japan. In 1183 Yoshinaka succeeded in driving the Taira from the capital. They fled west toward their power base in the Inland Sea, but suffered a devastating defeat at Yashima, not far from Sutoku’s grave, and on the nearby waters of Shido. Finally, in 1185, the Taira met with complete defeat at Dannoura, in the straits near Akamagaseki (modern Shimonoseki). Emperor Antoku (1178–1185, r. 1180–1185) was drowned during the battle. This pivotal conflict, which led to the establishment of military rule under a shogun, is the subject of Heike monoga- tari (The Tale of the Heike, mid-thirteenth century) and many other works in every genre.

56 book one

aff init ies

The principal sources from which Akinari adapted material for “Shiramine” are the military chronicles Tale of the Disor- der in Hogen, Heiji monogatari (Tale of the Heiji Insurrection, 1221?), The Tale of the Heike, Genpei josuiki (or seisuiki; Record of the Rise and Fall of the Minamoto and Taira, thirteenth cen- tury), and Taiheiki (Record of Great Peace, fourteenth century); the setsuwa collection Senjusho (Selected Stories, mid-thir- teenth century), formerly attributed to Saigyo; Saigyo’s Poems of a Mountain Home; the no play Matsuyama tengu (Goblin of Matsuyama, late fourteenth–early fifteenth centuries); Tsuga Teisho’s Hanabusa soshi (A Garland of Heroes, 1749), which includes a story about a debate between Emperor Go-Daigo and one of his ministers; the joruri play Sutoku-in Sanuki denki (Biography of Retired Emperor Sutoku at Sanuki, 1756); and Honcho jinja ko (Studies of Japanese Shrines), by Hayashi Razan (1583–1657). It is notable that all these sources are Japanese, except for the Chinese tale from which the story in A Garland of Heroes was derived.

In addition, the text quotes from or refers to Confucius; Mencius; Wuzazu (Five Miscellanies, 1618), by the late-Ming official Xie Zhaozhe (1567–1624), which was reprinted and widely read in Japan from the 1660s on; Shi jing (The Book of Songs, eleventh–sixth centuries B.C.E.); Laozi’s Daodejing (Classic of the Way and Its Power, fourth or third century B.C.E.); and the Diamond Sutra. Other sources and related works listed by Uzuki Hiroshi include Nihon shoki (Chron- icles of Japan, 720), Shiramineji engi (History of Shiramine Temple, 1406), and several Chinese works.4

other observat ions

Mishima Yukio considered “Shiramine” to be “a perfect mas- terpiece” and wrote that, with “The Carp of My Dreams,” it

shiramine 57

was his favorite story in the collection.5 Tanizaki Jun’ichiro singled out the opening of “Shiramine” as “a masterpiece of classical style,” “an exemplary piece of Japanese prose, employing the special strengths of our language.”6 He did so in part because Akinari provides no subject in the open- ing paragraphs, even though the knowledgeable reader will guess that the subject is Saigyo. (Indeed, Saigyo is not clearly identified until the end of the fourth paragraph, and then only indirectly, by his lesser-known name of En’i.) As Tanizaki points out, the original reads smoothly without subjects, but English requires the use at least of pronouns.7 “Shiramine” can even be read as a first-person narrative, and has been translated as such by Leon M. Zolbrod.8 Thus it is impos- sible to capture in translation the “special strengths,” and particularly the ambiguity, of the language of “Shiramine.”

Allowed by the guarhe found it hard to look away from the mountain’s autumn leaves, but he traveled on to Narumi Shore, where plovers leave tracks in the sand; to the high peak of Fuji, with its constant smoke; to Ukishimagahara, Kiyomi Barrier, the rocky shores of Oiso and Koiso, the lavender- rich plains of Musashino, the tranquil morning landscape at Shiogama, the fishermen’s thatched huts at Kisagata, the boat-bridge at Sano, the suspended bridges of Kiso—none of these places failed to move him, but, wanting also to see poetic sites in the western provinces, he went in the autumn of Ninnan 3 past the reeds that shed their blooms at Naniwa, felt the piercing winds on the shores of Suma and Akashi, and finally arrived at Sanuki, where, in the woods at a place called Mio Hill, he rested his staff for a time. Here he built a hut, not for comfort after pillows of grass on the long road, but as a way to practice contemplation and self-discipline.9

Image has been suppressed

58 book one

He learned that, near this village, at a place called Shira- mine, was the grave of the New Retired Emperor, and wish- ing to pay his respects he climbed the mountain early in the Tenth Month. Pines and cypress grew so thickly together that a misty rain seemed to fall even on a fine day when white clouds trailed across the sky. A steep hill called Chigogadake towered behind the site, while clouds and mist rose from the depths of the valley, blurring even objects close at hand. In a small opening among the trees, soil had been piled high with three stones laid on top, and the whole was overgrown with wild roses and vines. This melancholy mound must be the imperial grave, he thought, as a shadow fell on his heart and he could barely distinguish dream from reality.

When he had seen him in person, the emperor had con- ducted the business of the court from the Royal Seats in the Shishinden and Seiryoden, while the one hundred officials had listened in awe and obeyed his commands, exclaiming at the wisdom of their lord.10 Even after abdicating in favor of Emperor Konoe, he had occupied a jeweled forest on Mount Hakoya—and to think that now he lay dead beneath this wild mountain thicket where no attendants could be seen, only the tracks of passing deer! Emperor though he was, the karma of former lives clung fearsomely to him, and he could not evade his wrongdoing. From this came thoughts of mutability, and no doubt tears began to flow.

Wishing to hold a memorial service through the night, he sat on a flat stone before the grave and, while quietly chant- ing a sutra, composed this poem as an offering:

“The view of the waves at Matsuyama may not have changed,

but like the tidelands, traces of my lord have gradually

disappeared.”11

l. 19 “jeweled forest”: an elegant term for a palace. l. 19 “Mount Hakoya”: a conventional term for the residence of a retired

emperor, deriving from the name of a mountain where immortal sages dwelt. Both terms come from Chinese legends.

shiramine 59

He continued tirelessly chanting the sutra. How damp with dew his sleeves must have grown! As the sun set, the night was menacing here, deep in the mountains. He was cold with his bed of stone and fallen leaves for nightclothes; his mind clear and his body chilled to the bone, he began to sense something bleak and awful. The moon rose, but the thick woods allowed no light to penetrate. In the darkness, his heart grew weary and he began to doze, when a voice called unmistakably, “En’i, En’i.”

Opening his eyes and peering into the darkness, he saw the strange form of a person, tall and haggard, but could make out neither the face nor the color or pattern of the robes on the figure that stood facing him. Saigyo was, of course, a monk with a strong faith in the Buddhist Way, and so fearlessly he replied, “Who is there?” The other said, “I have appeared because I wish to reply to the verse you have recited:

The ship that drifted here on Matsuyama’s waves

has quickly faded into nothingness.12

I am glad that you have come.” Realizing that this was the ghost of the New Retired

Emperor, he pressed his forehead to the ground and said, with tears in his eyes, “But why do you wander like this, Your Majesty? It was because I envied your having shunned this degenerate world that I have tried to draw closer to the Buddha’s Way through my observances tonight; but for you to appear here, while it is more than I deserve, is surely very

l. 1 “How damp with dew his sleeves”: damp sleeves conventionally con- note tears, as well as dew.

l. 22 “why do you wander like this”: in other words, “Why does your spirit cling to this world, without achieving enlightenment?”

l. 23 “shunned this degenerate world” (jokuse o enri shi): has been interpreted in two ways: as a reference to Sutoku’s having taken Buddhist vows after his failed uprising, or as a reference to his having died and, presumably, achieved buddhahood.

60 book one

sad for you. You must set your mind on leaving this world behind, quickly forgetting its attachments, and rise, through your good karma, to the level of a perfect Buddha.” Thus he remonstrated with all his heart.

The New Retired Emperor gave a great laugh: “You do not know. The recent turmoil in the land has been of my doing. While I was still alive I devoted myself to the Tengu Way and caused the insurrection of the Heiji era, and since my death I have placed a curse on the imperial family. Watch! Soon I will bring about a great war in the land.”

Hearing these words, Saigyo checked his tears: “I am astonished to hear these ill-considered, woeful sentiments from you. You were always known for your wisdom, and you understand the nature of the Royal Way. Let me ask you a question. Did you decide upon the Hogen Insurrec- tion believing that it was in accord with the Heavenly Deity’s oracle? Or did you plan it out of selfishness? Please explain this to me in detail.”

The Retired Emperor’s expression changed: “Listen. The status of emperor is the highest among men. When an emperor corrupts morality, then one must follow the Man- date of Heaven, respond to the people’s wishes, and strike.13 No one can say that I was motivated by selfishness when, long ago in the Eiji era, I humbly acceded to my imperial father’s command and, though innocent of any crime, relinquished

l. 1 “sad for you”: it is sad for Sutoku that he still clings to this world, unable to achieve buddhahood.

l. 7 Tengu Way (mado): mado (literally, “evil way”) leads one away from or interferes with the Buddha’s teachings. Commentators agree that ten- gudo (the tengu way) is meant here. On tengu, see the introduction.

l. 14 Royal Way (odo): a Confucian concept that emphasizes enlightened rule through the virtues of benevolence (J. jin, Ch. ren) and righteousness (J. gi, Ch. yi), as opposed to military rule (hado).

l. 16 Heavenly Deity (Ame no kami): Amaterasu Omikami, the sun goddess, who is said to have prophesied that her progeny would rule Japan with- out interruption.

l. 24 Eiji: the years 1141/1142.

shiramine 61

the throne to the three-year-old Toshihito. When Toshihito died in his youth, I and others assumed that naturally my son Shigehito would rule the country next, but we were thwarted by the jealousy of Bifukumon’in, and the throne was seized by the Fourth Prince, Masahito. This caused deep bitter- ness, did it not? Shigehito would be an able ruler. What tal- ent does Masahito possess? Ignoring a person’s virtues and consulting a consort about the future of the realm were my imperial father’s crimes. Nevertheless, as long as he lived, I maintained my sincere devotion to him and gave no sign of discontent; but when he died, I asked myself how long matters could go on like this, and summoned my courage.

A mere vassal’s striking down his king led to eight hundred years of the Zhou,14 because the vassal had followed Heaven and responded to the people’s wishes; and so no one can call it unreasonable that men who have the status to gov- ern should try to replace a reign in which hens announce the dawn. You took your vows and became infatuated with the Buddha in a selfish desire to escape earthly passions and achieve nirvana in the next life. Now are you trying to sway me by forcing morality into the law of cause and effect, and mixing the teachings of Yao and Shun with Buddhism?” He spoke harshly.

Showing no fear, Saigyo moved forward and spoke: “In what you have just said, you have applied the principles of

l. 1 Toshihito: the name should be Narihito. l. 12 “courage”: that is, courage to resort to force in order to rectify the wrong

that Sutoku believed had been done to himself and his son. l. 16 “men who have the status to govern”: Sutoku is referring to himself and

his son Shigehito. l. 17 “hens announce the dawn”: a proverb signifying that a wife has usurped

her husband’s authority, referring here to Bifukumon’in’s influence over Toba.

l. 22 Sutoku rebukes Saigyo for having embraced Buddhism (“law of cause and effect”) and for trying to force ancient Confucian morality, as rep- resented by the legendary sage-kings Yao and Shun (ca. twenty-fourth century B.C.E.), into the mold of Buddhism.

62 book one

morality but have not escaped from desire and contamina- tion.15 There is no need to speak of distant China. In our own country, long ago, Emperor Ojin passed over an older son, Prince Osasagi, to make his youngest son, Prince Uji, the Heir Apparent. When the emperor died, each brother yielded to the other and neither would ascend to the throne. Prince Uji grew deeply concerned when this situation con- tinued for three years, and, asking himself why he should go on living and causing trouble for the people, took his own life, whereupon his older brother had no choice but to become emperor.16 He did so because he revered the posi- tion of emperor, observed filial and fraternal devotion, was utterly sincere, and had no personal desires.17 Surely this is what is meant by ‘the Way of Yao and Shun.’ In our country, esteem for Confucianism, and its position as the sole basis of the Royal Way, began when Prince Uji summoned Wani of Paekche as his tutor,18 and so we can say that the spirit of these princely brothers was precisely the spirit of the Chi- nese sages.

“Also, a book called Mencius, I am told, says that at the beginning of Zhou, King Wu brought peace to the people in a fit of rage. One should not say that a vassal killed his lord. Rather, he executed a man named Zhou who had trampled on benevolence and righteousness.19 Although the Chinese classics, histories, and even poetry and prose collections have all been brought to Japan, this book called Mencius alone has not yet come. The reason is said to be that all the ships carry- ing this book have met with violent storms and sunk.20 Why? Since the great goddess Amaterasu established our country and ruled, there has never been a break in the succession of emperors; but if the sly, specious teachings of Mencius were transmitted to Japan, then some future villain might over- throw the divine progeny and say that he had done no wrong: realizing this, the gods all hated the book and raised divine winds to capsize the ships. Thus many of the teachings of the sages of another country are not suited to our land. Fur-

shiramine 63

ther, is it not said in the Songs that brothers might quarrel at home but must defend against insults from outside?21 You, however, not only forgot the love of your own flesh and blood when the Retired Emperor died, but unfurled banners and raised bows to fight over the succession before his body had grown cold in the funerary palace—surely there is no worse crime against filial devotion than this.22 The world is a sacred vessel.23 The truth is that one who greedily tries to seize it will fail: Prince Shigehito’s accession may have been the wish of the people, but when you resorted to wayward methods and brought chaos to the world instead of spread- ing virtue and harmony, even those who loved you until yes- terday suddenly became wrathful enemies today, you were unable to attain your goal, you received an unprecedented punishment, and you turned to dust in this remote province. I beg you to forget your old resentments and return to the Pure Land.”

The Retired Emperor heaved a long sigh and said, “You have clearly stated the rights and wrongs of the matter and rebuked me for my crimes. What you say is not without rea- son. But what can I do? Banished to this island, confined in the Takato house at Matsuyama,24 I had no one to serve me but those who brought my three meals a day. Only the cries of the wild geese that cross the sky reached my pillow at night, and I longed for the capital, toward which they might be fly- ing;25 and it broke my heart to hear the plovers at dawn,26 crying to each other at the tip of the sandbar. Crows’ heads would turn white before the time came for me to return to the capital: I would surely wander this shore as a ghost. For the sake of the future world, I devoted myself to copying five

l. 17 Pure Land (Jodo): a Buddhist paradise in the west, presided over by the Buddha Amitabha (J. Amida). Here Saigyo implores Sutoku’s wandering ghost to put his grudges behind him, let go of his worldly attachments, achieve enlightenment, and enter the Pure Land.

64 book one

Mahayana sutras,27 but there was no place to keep them on this desolate strand, where no sound of conch or bell is ever heard. I sent the sutras with a poem to the prince at Ninwaji, asking that at least the traces of my brush be allowed to enter the capital.28

A plover on the shore—his traces go to the capital

but he himself only waits and cries at Matsuyama.29

But Lesser Counselor Shinzei, taking charge of the matter, told the emperor that the sutras might be intended as a curse, and so they were returned unopened, causing me great bit- terness. Since ancient times in both Japan and China, there have been many examples of brothers who became enemies competing for the realm; but no matter who interfered in his decision, for the emperor to ignore the law that requires con- sideration for members of the family30 and reject even the traces of my brush—the sutras I copied, aware of the depth of my guilt and repentant for my wrong-heartedness—is something I can never forgive. In the end, I decided to throw off my resentment by dedicating those sutras to the Tengu Way: biting my finger, I wrote a petition with the blood and sent it with the sutras to the bottom of the Shito Sea,31 after which I shut myself away, meeting no one, and fervently petitioned that I might become King of the Tengu—and then came the Heiji Insurrection. First I induced in Nobuyori the arrogance to wish for high rank, and caused Yoshitomo to become his ally. Yoshitomo was a hateful enemy. Everyone in his family, beginning with his father, Tameyoshi, gave his life for my sake, while Yoshitomo alone drew his bow against me.32 Victory was in sight, thanks to Tametomo’s valor and

l. 2 “no sound of conch or bell”: that is, there were no Buddhist temples, where conches and bells were used to mark the hour, among other functions.

shiramine 65

the strategy of Tameyoshi and Tadamasa,33 but attacked by a fire borne on a southwesterly wind, we fled the Shirakawa Palace,34 after which I tore my feet on the crags of Mount Nyoi35 and endured the rain and dew, my body covered with oak-cuttings from the mountain people, until finally I was arrested and banished to this island—and all of these tor- ments arose from Yoshitomo’s perverse plot. In revenge, I cursed him by giving him the heart of a tiger or a wolf and had him conspire with Nobuyori, so that Nobuyori commit- ted the crime of defying the earthly deity and was struck down by Kiyomori, who has no talent for military affairs.36 Retribution for killing his own father, Tameyoshi, came to Yoshitomo when he was deceived by one of his own retain- ers: this was heaven’s punishment!37 As for Lesser Counselor Shinzei: inciting his twisted heart, which had always led him to show off his erudition and block the advancement of oth- ers, I made him the enemy of Nobuyori and Yoshitomo, so that in the end he abandoned his home and hid in a hole at Uji, where he was finally discovered and captured, and his severed head was exposed on the riverbank at Rokujo.38 This brought to a close his crime of sycophancy in returning my sutras. Caught up with my anger, I took Bifukumon’in’s life in the summer of the Oho era and placed a curse on Tadamichi39 in the spring of the Chokan era, and in the autumn of that year I left the world myself; but the flames of my resentment still blazed undiminished, and I became the Great King of Evil, the master of more than three hun- dred. When my followers see happiness in others, they turn

l. 8 “heart of a tiger or a wolf”: that is, a cruel, grasping heart. l. 10 “earthly deity”: the emperor; here Cloistered Emperor Go-Shirakawa. l. 23 Oho: the years 1161 to 1163. Bifukumon’in actually died in the winter of

1160. l. 24 Chokan: the years 1163 to 1165. l. 27 “three hundred”: there were said to be more than three hundred tengu

in Japan.

66 book one

it to calamity; seeing the realm at peace, they incite turmoil. Kiyomori’s karmic reward has been large in this life, so that all the members of his clan have achieved high position and rank, and he governs as he wishes; but since Shigemori assists him devotedly, their time has not yet come.40 You watch—the Taira clan will surely not last long. In the end, I shall take my revenge on Masahito to the same extent that he was cruel to me.” His voice had grown steadily more omi- nous. Saigyo said, “Tied so strongly to the evil karma of the Tengu World, Your Majesty is separated one trillion leagues

l. 6 Masahito: Ex-Emperor Go-Shirakawa.

Image has been suppressed

shiramine 67

“ He sat facing him

silently.”

from the Pure Land. I shall say nothing more.” He sat facing him silently.

Just then, the peaks and valleys shook; a wind seemed to knock over the forest and lifted sand and pebbles twist- ing into the sky. In the next instant, a goblin-fire burst from below the Retired Emperor’s knees, and the mountains and valleys grew as bright as at noontime. Staring at the royal figure in this light, Saigyo saw a face as red as though blood had been poured over it; a tangle of knee-length hair; angry, glaring eyes; and feverish, painful breathing. The robe was brown and hideously stained with soot; the nails on the hands and feet had grown as long as an animal’s claws: he

Image has been suppressed

68 book one

had exactly the aspect of the King of Evil himself, appalling and dreadful. Looking to the sky, the Retired Emperor cried, “Sagami, Sagami.” In response, a goblin flew down in the form of a hawk-like bird, prostrated itself, and waited for its master to speak. The Retired Emperor said to the goblin- bird, “Why do you neither take Shigemori’s life quickly nor torment Masahito and Kiyomori?” The goblin-bird replied, “The Ex-Emperor’s luck has not yet run out, and Shigemo- ri’s devotion keeps him beyond our reach. After one zodiac cycle, Shigemori’s life span will come to an end;41 if you wait for him die then, the luck of his clan will perish as well.” The Retired Emperor clapped his hands in delight: “I shall destroy all these enemies, here in the sea before me!”42 The horror of his voice, echoing in the valleys and peaks, was beyond description.

Witnessing the baseness of the Tengu Way, Saigyo could not hold back his tears. Composing another poem, he urged the Retired Emperor again to embrace the Buddha’s Way:

“Long ago you may have dwelt, my lord, in jeweled splendor,

but what good is that to you now?43

Royalty and peasants—they are the same,” he cried, pouring out his feelings.

The Retired Emperor appeared to be moved by these words: his expression softened, the goblin-fire flickered and went out, and his figure faded from sight; the goblin-bird, too, disappeared without a trace; the moon, nearly full, was hidden by the peak, and in the obscurity of the dark woods Saigyo felt as though he were wandering in a dream. Soon the dawn sky brightened and filled with the fresh chirping of morning birds, and so he chanted the Diamond Sutra as a final offering44 and then descended the mountain and

l. 8 Ex-Emperor: Go-Shirakawa (Masahito).

shiramine 69

returned to his hut, where he quietly reviewed the events of the night before. Realizing that there had been no discrepan- cies in the Retired Emperor’s account of the Heiji Insurrec- tion, the fates of various people, or the dates, he was deeply awed and spoke to no one about it.

Thirteen years later, in the autumn of the fourth year of Jisho, Taira no Shigemori fell ill and died, whereupon the Taira Lay-Priest Chancellor, angry at his lord, confined him in the Toba Detached Palace and then tormented him in the thatched palace at Fukuhara.45 When Yoritomo, contending with the eastern winds, and Yoshinaka, sweeping away the northern snows, emerged, the whole Taira clan drifted on the western sea, finally reaching Shido and Yashima in Sanuki, where many brave warriors ended up in the stomachs of turtles and fish, and, pursued to Dannoura at Akamagaseki, their young lord entered the sea and all their commanders perished. It was a strange, terrifying story, differing in no detail from the Retired Emperor’s prophesy. Later, a shrine was built for him, studded with jewels and brightly painted, where he is honored and revered. All who visit the province should put up offerings, purify themselves, and pay their respects to this deity.46

l. 6 “fourth year of Jisho”: the year 1179. l. 8 Taira Lay-Priest Chancellor: Kiyomori. l. 8 “his lord”: Ex-Emperor Go-Shirakawa.

70 book one

N O T E S

1. Saigyo, Poems of a Mountain Home, trans. Burton Watson (New York: Columbia University Press, 1991).

2. Murasaki Shikibu, The Tale of Genji, trans. Edward G. Seidensticker

(New York: Knopf, 1976), p. 102, n. *.

3. William R. Wilson, trans., Hogen Monogatari: Tale of the Disorder in Hogen, Cornell East Asia Series, no. 99 (Ithaca, N.Y.: East Asia Pro- gram, Cornell University, 2001), p. 3.

4. Uzuki Hiroshi, Ugetsu monogatari hyoshaku, Nihon koten hyoshaku zenchushaku sosho (Tokyo: Kadokawa, 1969), pp. 707–708.

5. Mishima Yukio, “Ugetsu monogatari ni tsuite,” in Mishima Yukio

zenshu (Tokyo: Shinchosha, 1975), vol. 25, pp. 272–273. 6. Tanizaki Jun’ichiro, Bunsho tokuhon, in Tanizaki Jun’ichiro zenshu

(Tokyo: Chuo Koronsha, 1974), vol. 21, pp. 137–138. 7. Tanizaki, Bunsho tokuhon, p. 175. 8. Leon M. Zolbrod, trans. and ed., Ugetsu Monogatari: Tales of Moonlight

and Rain: A Complete English Version of the Eighteenth-Century Japa-

nese Collection of Tales of the Supernatural (Vancouver: University of

British Columbia Press, 1974), pp. 98–108.

9. “contemplation” (kannen): refers to contemplating and meditating on

the truth of Buddhist teachings and the path to enlightenment.

“self-discipline” (shugyo): refers to a monk’s maintaining the rules for proper conduct, as taught by the Buddha.

10. The Shishinden (Hall of the Royal Seat) was the main ceremonial build-

ing of the emperor’s residential compound, and the Seiryoden (Hall of Cool and Refreshing Breezes) was the emperor’s private residence.

“one hundred officials”: a formulaic expression for the many mili-

tary and civil officials serving the court.

11. This poem is identical, except for the last word, to one by Saigyo, which begins with a headnote: “I traveled to Sanuki and searched for

the site of the Retired Emperor’s residence at a harbor called Mat-

suyama, but there was no trace / no tideland”:

The view of the waves at Matsuyama may not have changed,

but like the tidelands, my lord is gone without a trace.

(Sankashu, no. 1354)

Both “tidelands” and “trace” translate the word kata, which Saigyo used as a pun.

shiramine 71

12. Sankashu, no. 1353. Although this poem was written by Saigyo, there is a tradition that it was composed by the ghost of Emperor Sutoku

when Saigyo visited his grave. Embedded in the poem is a second layer of meaning: “The exiled emperor who came, borne upon the

waves of Matsuyama, died here before long.”

13. It was the Confucian philosopher Mencius (372?–289? B.C.E.) who

most clearly enunciated the concept that the people have the right to

depose a ruler whose corruption has caused him to lose the Mandate

of Heaven.

14. King Wu of Zhou, a vassal of the notorious King Zhou of Shang,

defeated his overlord around 1122 B.C.E. and established the Zhou

dynasty, which lasted for eight hundred to nine hundred years,

depending on which dates are accepted.

15. “you . . . have not escaped from desire and contamination”: in short,

“You have not achieved enlightenment.”

“desire and contamination” (yokujin): in Buddhism, enlighten-

ment is hindered by “five desires” and “six contaminants”—that is,

five objects of desire (color, voice, smell, taste, and touch; alterna-

tively, color, fame, food, fortune, and sleep) and the six “roots” of

these desires (eyes, ears, nose, tongue, body, and consciousness).

Together, they refer to the passions and desires that impede one’s

progress toward enlightenment.

16. Prince Osasagi, the fourth son of Emperor Ojin (late fourth–early fifth centuries; legendary r. 270–310), became Emperor Nintoku

(early fifth century; legendary r. 313–399).

17. “filial and fraternal devotion”: along with sincerity, were traditional

Confucian virtues: “Filial piety and fraternal submission!—are they

not the root of all benevolent actions?” (Confucius, Analects 1:2, in

James Legge, trans., The Four Books: Confucian Analects, The Great

Learning, The Doctrine of the Mean, and The Works of Mencius [1879,

1923; reprint, New York: Paragon, 1966], p. 3).

18. Around 400, the scholar Wani immigrated from Paekche (a state

in the southwest of the Korean Peninsula) to Japan, where he intro-

duced Confucian texts and tutored Prince Uji.

19. King Wu “brought peace to the people of the Empire in one outburst

of rage” (Mencius, Mencius, trans. D. C. Lau [Harmondsworth: Pen-

guin, 1970], 1.B.3, p. 63). The reference is to Wu’s killing of the des-

potic King Zhou: “A man who mutilates benevolence is a mutilator,

while one who cripples righteousness is a crippler. He who is both

72 book one

a mutilator and a crippler is an ‘outcast.’ I have indeed heard of the

punishment of the ‘outcast Tchou [Zhou],’ but I have not heard of any

regicide” (Mencius, Mencius 1.B.8, p. 68).

20. This is reported in book 4 of Xie Zhaozhe, Five Miscellanies: “The

Japanese prize Confucian texts and believe in Buddhist teachings.

They pay high prices for all the Chinese classics. Only Mencius is

lacking, it is said. If anyone tries to carry this book to Japan, his ship

will capsize and sink. This is a very strange thing.”

21. The Book of Songs, one of the five Confucian classics, was compiled

between the eleventh and sixth centuries B.C.E. The reference is to a

passage in song no. 164: “Brothers may quarrel within the walls, /

But outside they defend one another from insult” (Arthur Waley, ed.

and trans., The Book of Songs [1937; reprint, New York: Grove Press,

1960], no. 194, p. 203).

22. Saigyo is referring to Sutoku’s rebellion against his brother Go-Shi- rakawa after the death of their father, Toba.

“funerary palace” (mogari no miya): a temporary palace building

or shrine where the body of a deceased emperor or empress was kept

while preparations were being made for the funeral.

23. Quoted from chapter 29 of Laozi, Classic of the Way: “Some want to

control the world. I have seen that this is not possible. The world is

a sacred vessel; one cannot control it.” Saigyo (perhaps speaking for Akinari) embraces Chinese classics selectively, linking the original

Confucian virtues of benevolence, righteousness, and filial and fra-

ternal devotion, as well as the Taoist concept of wu wei (inaction),

to the Japanese imperial tradition, and rejecting Mencius’s theory of

revolution.

24. The Takato were a prominent family in Matsuyama. 25. In Chinese and Japanese legend, wild geese (kari) were often associ-

ated with messengers, partly because of their migratory habits. Kari

is homophonous with a word meaning “temporary” or “transitory,”

and so carries Buddhist connotations as well.

26. Wild geese were associated with autumn; plovers, with winter. There

is a progression from night (geese) to dawn (plovers) as well.

27. Through performing good karma (copying sutras), Sutoku sought

to be reborn in better circumstances, preferably in Amida’s Pure

Land. Mahayana is the school of Buddhism prevalent in China, Korea, and Japan (in contrast to Theravada, widespread in, for example, Thailand).

shiramine 73

28. Ninwaji, now called Ninnaji, is a Buddhist monastery in Kyoto.

Sutoku’s younger brother Prince Motohito (Kakusho Hoshinno) was the abbot of Ninnaji.

29. In this poem, which appears in Hogen monogatari, Sutoku likens himself to a plover.

“traces” (ato): signifies both “footprints” and “writing.”

matsu: both “pine tree” (in the place-name Matsuyama) and “to

wait.”

30. A provision in the Taiho Code, promulgated in 701, called for penal- ties to be reduced in the case of the emperor’s close relatives.

31. The reference to Shito Sea (Shito no umi) is unclear. Shido no ura

(Shido Bay), near the city of Takamatsu, and Shido no umi (Shido

Sea), near the city of Sakade, have been suggested, but neither is writ-

ten with the same characters as Akinari’s “Shito no umi.”

32. Minamoto no Tameyoshi (1096–1156) and six of his sons—except

Yoshitomo—sided with Sutoku in the Hogen Insurrection. 33. Minamoto no Tametomo (1139–1170), Tameyoshi’s eighth son, was

known for his courage and strength. Taira no Tadamasa (d. 1156)

sided with Sutoku in the Hogen Insurrection and was executed by his own nephew, Kiyomori.

34. Shirakawa Palace was Sutoku’s headquarters during the Hogen Insurrection. The fire was Yoshitomo’s “perverse plot,” mentioned at

the end of the sentence.

35. Mount Nyoi (Nyoigamine), located on the eastern edge of Kyoto above

the Ginkaku (Silver Pavilion), is now called Nyoigatake or Daimonji-

yama.

36. Tale of the Disorder in Hogen reports that Kiyomori, head of the Taira clan, was a “weak shot” (Wilson, trans., Hogen Monogatari, p. 27).

37. In 1156 Yoshitomo had resisted the emperor’s command to kill

Tameyoshi, but finally ordered that it be done (Wilson, trans., Hogen Monogatari, pp. 65–68). He was assassinated in 1160 by a retainer in

whose house he had taken refuge.

38. Uji is a village south of Kyoto. Criminals were often executed, and

their heads displayed, on the bank of the Kamo River near Rokujo (Sixth Avenue) in Kyoto.

39. Fujiwara Tadamichi (1097–1164), chancellor and regent, conspired

with Bifukumon’in to deny the throne to Sutoku’s son Shigehito and

install Go-Shirakawa instead, and sided with the emperor (against

Sutoku) during the Hogen Insurrection.

40. Shigemori (1138–1179), Taira no Kiyomori’s eldest son, was noted for

his good character.

41. “zodiac cycle” (eto hitomeguri): normally refers to the sixty-year Chi-

nese cycle, which combines five elements with twelve animals of the

zodiac, but here a twelve-year cycle is meant.

42. “sea before me”: refers to the Inland Sea (Setonaikai), where the Taira

clan was defeated by the Minamoto in 1185.

43. Saigyo, Sankashu, no. 1355. The headnote reads, “Visiting a place called Shiramine, where the emperor’s grave is located.”

44. The Diamond Sutra (J. Kongo [hannyaharamitta] kyo, Skt. Vajracche- dika-sutra) is fascicle 547 of the Large Sutra on Perfect Wisdom (J. Dai- hannyaharamitta-kyo, Skt. Mahaprajñaparamita-sutra).

45. The Toba Detached Palace was a luxurious estate in what is now

Fushimi Ward in Kyoto. For a few months in 1180, Kiyomori had the

capital moved from Kyoto to Fukuhara, the present Hyogo Ward in Kobe, whose palace was proverbially rough and primitive, compared

with the elegant mansions of Kyoto.

46. “offerings” (nusa): hangings made of cloth or paper that are attached

to the gates and eaves of a Shinto shrine.

“diety”: a translation of kami. All Japanese emperors were consid-

ered kami, especially those who had been enshrined, as was Sutoku.

74 book one

t itle

The title, “Kikka no chigiri,” refers to the Chrysanthemum Festival, observed on the ninth day of the Ninth Month, the last month of autumn in the old Japanese calendar. Although the festival originated in China, it has a long history in Japan, having first been observed there in 824.

The choice of the Chrysanthemum Festival as the day on which the central characters will reunite defines their relationship. In early modern Japan, the chrysanthemum blossom (kikka) was a common symbol of homosexual inter- course because it was thought to resemble an anus. Both kiku no chigiri (chrysanthemum vow) and kiku asobi (chrysanthe- mum play) are euphemisms for homosexual intercourse. The story’s title, then, tells the alert reader that Samon and Soemon are not just friends, but lovers.1

characters

Like “Shiramine,” “The Chrysanthemum Vow” has only two principal characters: the Confucian scholar Hasebe Samon

BOOK ONE

THE CHRYSANTHEMUM VOW

and the samurai Akana Soemon. Both men represent upper levels of society and are paragons of dependability and integ- rity. The cast also includes several supporting characters, most notably Samon’s mother. Unlike the fictional protago- nists Samon and Soemon, as well as Samon’s mother, En’ya Kamon-no-suke, Sasaki Ujitsuna, and Amako Tsunehisa lived in the fifteenth century.

places

Most of “The Chrysanthemum Vow” takes place at the home of Samon in the town of Kako, the modern city of Kakogawa, Hyogo Prefecture, about 65 miles west of Kyoto. Soemon is from Matsue, a city in Shimane Prefecture (formerly, Izumo Province), across the mountains on the coast of the Sea of Japan, about 125 miles west-northwest of Kakogawa.

t ime

Spring, early summer, and autumn of 1486.

background

Far from stigmatizing the sexual bond between Samon and Soemon, “The Chrysanthemum Vow” presents the two men as models of friendship, loyalty, dependability, cour- age, erudition, and self-sacrifice—the opposite of the shal- low men against whom the story warns the reader. Samon and Soemon are, in fact, idealized figures, as are the devoted samurai lovers in Ihara Saikaku’s Nanshoku okagami (The Great Mirror of Male Love, 1687). Given the consistently dys- functional heterosexual relationships featured in the subse- quent tales, erotic friendship between men, as depicted in

76 book one

this story, becomes a sort of model for human relationships. This is not surprising in a society led by a samurai class that idealized male–male sexuality.

The attack on Toda (Tomita, in Akinari’s unorthodox reading) Castle, mentioned in “The Chrysanthemum Vow,” began on the last day of the Twelfth Month of 1485. The ruins of Toda Castle can still be seen in Shimane Prefecture.

aff init ies

Akinari adapted “The Chrysanthemum Vow,” in part, from “Fan Juqing jishu sisheng jiao” (Fan Chü-ch’ing’s Eternal Friendship), a Ming vernacular tale in the collection Gujin xiaoshuo (Old and New Stories, 1620–1621), edited by Feng Menglong.2

In keeping with the story’s Chinese origins, Akinari also refers, directly or indirectly, to Mencius, Confucius, the Li ji (The Book of Rites, ca. 300 B.C.E.), and the Shiji (Records of the Grand Historian), by Sima Qian (145?–90? B.C.E.), as well as to The Tale of Genji and several waka.

Lush and green is tyour garden. In friendship, bond not with a shallow man. Though the willow comes early into leaf, will it withstand the first winds of autumn? The shallow man is quick to make friends and as quick to part. Year after year, the willow brightens in the spring, but a shallow man will not visit again.

In the province of Harima, in the post town of Kako, lived a Confucian scholar named Hasebe Samon. Content with an upright life of poverty, he abhorred the encumbrance of possessions, except for the books that he made his compan-

the chrysanthemum vow 77

Image has been suppressed

ions. With him was his elderly mother, as virtuous as the mother of Mencius.3 She worked steadily, twisting and spin- ning thread to support Samon’s desire for learning. He had a younger sister, too, who was provided for by the Sayo clan, of the same town. The Sayos had great wealth. Admiring the sagacity of the Hasebe mother and son, they took the sis- ter as a bride, thus becoming family, and often would send goods to Samon and his mother; but insisting that they could not trouble others for their own sustenance, Samon and his mother never accepted the gifts.

One day Samon was visiting a man of the same town, talk- ing with him of matters ancient and contemporary, when, just as the conversation was gaining momentum, he heard a sad moaning from the other side of the wall. He questioned his host, who replied, “The man seems to be from someplace west of here. He asked for a night’s lodging, saying that he had fallen behind his traveling companions. He appeared to me to be a man of quality, a fine samurai, and so I allowed him to stay; but that night he was seized by a violent fever that made it difficult for him even to rise by himself, and so, tak- ing pity on him, I have let him stay these three or four days; but I am not sure where he is from and think I might have made a terrible mistake. I do not know what to do.” Samon said, “A sad story indeed. Your misgivings are understand- able, of course, but a fever must be especially distressing to a man who takes ill on a journey, far from everyone he knows. I should like to have a look at him.” His host restrained him: “I have heard that such diseases can spread and afflict others, and so I have forbidden everyone in my household to go in there. You must not put yourself in danger by going to him.” With a smile, Samon replied, “Life and death are a matter of Destiny.4 What disease will spread to another? It is the igno- rant who say such things; I do not believe them.” With this, he opened the door and went in. Looking at the man, he saw that his host had not been mistaken—this was no ordinary person, and the illness appeared to be grave: his face was yel-

78 book one

low; his skin was dark and gaunt; and he lay in agony on an old quilt. Looking affably at Samon, he said, “Give me a cup of hot water, if you would.” Samon went to his side. “Have no fear, sir, I shall help you,” he said. Consulting his host, he selected some medicines and, by himself, determined the dosage and prepared a decoction, which he gave to the man to drink. He also had him eat some rice porridge. In short, he cared for the man with extraordinary kindness, as though he were nursing his own brother.

The samurai was moved to tears by Samon’s warm com- passion. “That you should be so kind to me, a complete stranger . . . Even if I die, I will show my gratitude,” he said. Samon comforted him: “You must not use fainthearted words. Generally this disease has a certain term; once it has run its course, your life will be in no danger. I shall come every day to look after you,” he vowed with all sincerity. Samon cared for the man devotedly, and the illness gradually abated. Feel- ing quite refreshed, the man thanked his host warmly and, esteeming Samon for his unobtrusive kindness, inquired into his vocation and then related his own circumstances: “I am from the village of Matsue, in the province of Izumo, and my name is Akana Soemon. Since I have attained some slight understanding of military texts, the master of Tomita Castle, En’ya Kamon-no-suke, employed me as his tutor.5 During that time, I was sent as a secret envoy to Sasaki Uji- tsuna, in Omi.6 While I was staying there, the former master of Tomita Castle, Amako Tsunehisa, enlisted the support of the Nakayama, launched a surprise New Year’s Eve attack, and captured the castle. Lord Kamon-no-suke was among those killed. Since Izumo was, properly speaking, a Sasaki domain, and En’ya the administrator, I urged Ujitsuna to join the Mizawa and Mitoya clans to overthrow Tsunehisa; but Ujitsuna, despite his formidable appearance, was in fact a coward and a fool—far from carrying out my proposal, he ordered me to stay in his domain. Seeing no point in remain- ing there, I slipped away and started for home, only to be

the chrysanthemum vow 79

stricken by this disease and forced against my will to impose on you, sir. Your kindness is more than I deserve. I shall devote the rest of my life to repaying you.” Samon responded, “It is only human nature to help someone in distress;7 I have done nothing to earn your very gracious thanks. Please stay on and recuperate.” Taking strength from the sincerity of Samon’s words, Akana stayed for some days, and his health returned almost to normal.

During this time, thinking what a good friend he had found, Samon spent his days and nights with Akana. As they talked together, Akana began to speak hesitantly of various Chinese thinkers, regarding whom his questions and under-

80 book one

Image has been suppressed

standing were exceptional, and on military theory he spoke with authority. Finding that their thoughts and feelings were in harmony on every subject, the two were filled with mutual admiration and joy, and finally they pledged their brother- hood. Being the elder by five years, Akana, in the role of older brother, accepted Samon’s expressions of respect and said to him, “Many years have passed since I lost my father and mother. Your aged mother is now my mother, and I should like to pay my respects to her anew. I wonder if she will take pity on me and agree to my childish wish.” Samon was over- joyed: “My mother has always lamented that I was alone. Your heartfelt words will give her a new lease on life when I

mako Tsunehisa . . .

unched a surprise

ew Year’s Eve attack,

nd captured the

astle.”

the chrysanthemum vow 81

Image has been suppressed

convey them to her.” With this, he took Akana to his house, where his mother greeted them joyfully: “My son lacks tal- ent, his studies are out of step with the times, and so he has missed his chance to advance in the world. I pray that you do not abandon him, but guide him as his elder brother.” Akana bowed deeply and said, “A man of character values what is right. Fame and fortune are not worthy of mention. Blessed with my honored mother’s love, and receiving the respect of my wise younger brother—what more could I desire?” Rejoicing, he stayed for some time.

Although they had flowered, it seemed, only yesterday or today, the cherry blossoms at Onoe had scattered, and waves rising with a refreshing breeze proclaimed that early summer had arrived.8 Akana said to Samon and his mother, “Since it was to see how things stand in Izumo that I escaped from Omi, I should like to go down there briefly and then come back to repay your kindness humbly as a servant living on bean gruel and water. Please allow me to take my leave for a time.” Samon said, “If it must be so, my brother, when will you return?” Akana said, “The months and days will pass quickly. At the latest, I shall return before the end of this autumn.” Samon said, “On what day of autumn shall I expect you? I beg you to appoint the time.” Akana said, “Let us decide, then, that the Chrysanthemum Festival, the ninth day of the Ninth Month, shall be the day of my return.” Samon said, “Please be certain not to mis- take the day. I shall await you with a sprig of blossoming chrysanthemum and poor saké.” Mutually they pledged their reunion and lamented their separation, and Akana returned to the west.

l. 18 “living on bean gruel and water”: a hyperbolic expression of filial devo- tion that derives from a line attributed to Confucius in the Book of Rites: “To sip bean gruel and drink water, and to do so joyfully—this is what I call filial devotion.”

l. 28 “poor saké”: an expression of humility.

82 book one

The ever-renewing months and days sped by, the berries colored on the lower branches of the oleaster, and the wild chrysanthemum in the hedge put out brilliant blossoms as the Ninth Month arrived. On the ninth day, Samon rose ear- lier than usual, swept the mats of his grass hut, placed two or three sprigs of yellow and white chrysanthemums in a small vase, and emptied his purse to provide saké and food. His aged mother said, “I have heard that Izumo, the Land of Eight Clouds, lies far to the north of the mountains, more than one hundred ri from here, and so we cannot be sure that he will arrive today. It would not be too late if you made your preparations when you see that he has come.” Samon said, “Being a samurai of honor, Akana certainly will not break his vow. I am ashamed at what he would think if he should find me rushing to get ready only after I had seen him.” Buying fine saké and cooking some fish, he prepared them in the kitchen.

On this day, the sky was clear and cloudless in every direc- tion, and many groups of travelers appeared, talking as they went. “So-and-so enjoys good weather today as he enters the capital, an omen that our merchandise will fetch a good profit,” said one as he passed. A samurai in his fifties said to his companion, a man in his twenties and wearing the same attire: “The weather is so good, the sea so calm. If we had hired a boat at Akashi and set out at dawn,9 we would now be approaching the harbor at Ushimado Straits. You young- sters waste money with your timidity.” The other soothed him, saying, “I should think that anyone would hesitate to cross here. Our lord had a terrible time, according to his attendants, crossing from Azukijima to Murozu on his way up to the capital. Do not be angry. I shall treat you to some soba noodles when we reach Uogahashi.”10 They moved on out of sight. A packhorse man said angrily, “Are you dead,

l. 5 “grass hut”: signifies a humble dwelling and is not to be taken literally. l. 9 “more than one hundred ri”: signifies a great distance.

the chrysanthemum vow 83

you nag? Open your eyes.” Pushing the packsaddle back into place, he drove the horse on. Noon passed, too, but the one awaited had not come. As the sun sank in the west, the travelers’ steps quickened in their search for lodging. Samon saw them, but his gaze was fixed on the distance, and he felt something like intoxication.

Samon’s aged mother called to him: “Although the man’s heart be not fickle like autumn, is it only today that the hue of the chrysanthemum is rich and warm?11 If he is sincere about returning here, what reason have you to reproach him, though the gentle rains of early winter fall? Come inside, lie down, and wait again tomorrow.” Unable to disobey, Samon reassured his mother and asked her to retire first, and then, just in case, he stepped out through the door and looked again. The Milky Way shone faintly; the solitary moon cast its light on him alone; a watchdog’s bark reached him clearly from the distance; and the waves on the shore seemed to crash at his very feet.12 As the moon set behind the hills and its light faded from the sky, he thought it time to go inside and was about to shut the door behind him when he glimpsed a figure in the shadows, moving toward him with the wind. Doubting his eyes, he looked again. It was Akana Soemon.

Samon’s heart leaped with joy. “I have been waiting for you since early this morning. How delighted I am that you have kept your pledge! Here, please come in,” he said, but Akana merely nodded and did not speak. Samon led him to the south window and seated him there: “Since you were so late, my brother, our mother grew weary of waiting. ‘He will come tomorrow,’ she said, and went into her bedroom. I shall go to waken her.” Akana stopped him with a shake of the head. Still he said nothing. Samon said, “You have trav- eled day and night; your heart must be weary and your legs tired. Please have a cup of saké and rest.” He warmed the saké, arranged some dishes of food, and served them; but Akana covered his face with his sleeve, as though to avoid

84 book one

a foul smell. Samon said, “This is simple, homemade fare, inadequate to welcome you properly, but I prepared it with all my heart. Please do not refuse it.” Akana still did not reply. Heaving a long sigh, he paused, then finally spoke: “My brother, what reason could I have to decline your heart- felt hospitality? I lack the words to deceive you, and so I shall tell the truth. You must not be startled. I am not a man of this world. A filthy ghost has taken this form briefly to appear before you.”

Samon was astounded: “What makes you say this mon- strous thing, my brother? I am certain that I have not been dreaming.” Akana said, “Parting from you, I returned to my native place. Most of the people there had submitted to Tsunehisa’s authority; no one remembered En’ya’s kindness. I called on my cousin, Akana Tanji, at Tomita Castle. He explained the advantages and disadvantages and arranged for me to have an audience with Tsunehisa. Tentatively accepting my cousin’s advice, I observed Tsunehisa’s con- duct closely and found that even though he is a man of great courage who trains his troops well, he is jealous and suspi- cious in his dealings with men of learning and, as a conse- quence, confides in no one and has no retainers willing to give their lives for him. I saw no point in lingering there, and so, explaining my chrysanthemum vow with you, asked for leave to go; but Tsunehisa looked displeased and ordered Tanji not to let me out of the castle. This state of affairs con- tinued until today. Imagining how you would regard me if I broke my pledge, I pondered my options but found no way to escape. As the ancients said: A man cannot travel a thousand ri in one day; a spirit can easily do so. Recalling this, I fell on my sword and tonight rode the dark wind from afar to arrive in time for our chrysanthemum tryst. Please understand my feelings and take pity on me.” As he finished speaking, his eyes seemed to fill with tears: “Now we part forever. Please serve our mother faithfully.” With this, he rose from his seat and faded from sight.

the chrysanthemum vow 85

In a panic, Samon tried to stop him, but, blinded by the dark wind, he could not tell where Akana had gone. Falling to his knees and then on his face, he began to wail loudly. His mother, startled from sleep, came to look and found Samon lying on the floor among the saké flasks and plates of fish that he had arranged by the seat of honor. Hurrying to help him rise, she asked, “What is wrong?” But he sobbed qui- etly, saying nothing. His mother spoke again: “If you resent your brother Akana now for breaking his pledge, you will have nothing to say if he comes tomorrow. Are you such a child that you can be so foolish?” Thus she admonished and encouraged him. Finally Samon replied, “My brother came tonight to fulfill our chrysanthemum pledge. When I wel- comed him with saké and food, he refused them again and again and said, ‘For this and that reason, I was about to break our pledge, and so I fell on my sword and came these one hundred ri as a ghost.’ Then he vanished. As a result, I have roused you from your sleep. Please forgive me,” he said and began to weep, the tears streaming down his face, where- upon his mother said, “I have heard that a man in prison dreams that he has been pardoned, and a thirsty man drinks water in his dreams. You must be like them. Calm yourself.” But Samon shook his head: “Truly, it was nothing like an empty dream. My brother was here.” Again he cried out in grief and threw himself down, weeping. His mother no lon- ger doubted him, and together they passed the night raising their voices in lamentation.

The next day, Samon bowed in supplication to his mother and said, “Since childhood I have devoted myself to the writ- ing brush and ink, but I have neither made a name for myself in public service nor been able to discharge my filial duty to my family; I have merely dwelt here uselessly between heaven and earth. My brother Akana gave his life for loyalty.

l. 32 “dwelt here uselessly”: that is, he has not been a good Confucian, in either his public or his private life, except insofar as he loves learning.

86 book one

Today I shall set out for Izumo, where I intend at least to bury his remains and fulfill his trust. Please take good care of yourself and give me leave to be away for a time.” His mother said, “Go, my son, but come back soon and comfort me in my old age. Do not stay there so long that you make today the day of our final parting.” Samon said, “Our lives are like foam on the water—we cannot know but what they might fade away, morning or evening, but I shall come back soon.” Brushing away his tears, he left the house, went to beg the Sayos to look after his mother, and started down the road to Izumo. Even though he was hungry, he did not think of food; even though he was cold, he forgot about clothing; and when he dozed off, he lamented all night in his dreams. After ten days, he reached Tomita Castle.

He went directly to Akana Tanji’s house and sent in his name, whereupon Tanji came to greet him and led him inside. Questioning Samon closely, he said, “Unless you heard of Soemon’s death from some winged creature, how could you know? It does not seem possible.” Samon said, “A samurai does not concern himself with the vicissitudes of rank and fortune; he values only loyalty. Valuing his pledge, my brother Soemon came one hundred ri as a ghost. I, in return, have traveled day and night to come down here. I should like to ask you, sir, about something I learned in my studies. Please answer clearly. In ancient times, when Gongshu Zuo of Wei lay ill in bed, the king of Wei himself came and, holding Zuo’s hand, said, ‘If the unavoidable should happen, whom shall I appoint to protect the country? Give me your guidance.’ Zuo replied warmly, saying, ‘Even though Shang Yang is young, he has rare ability. If your high- ness does not employ him, do not let him cross the border, even if you must kill him. If you allow him to go to another country, calamity will surely result.’ Then Zuo secretly sum- moned Shang Yang and told him, ‘I recommended you, but the king appeared not to accept my advice, and so I told him to kill you if he does not employ you. This is putting

the chrysanthemum vow 87

the lord first and the retainer after. You must go quickly to another country and escape harm,’ he said.13 How would you compare this case, sir, with that of you and Soemon?” Tanji hung his head and said nothing. Samon moved closer: “My brother Soemon was a loyal retainer for remembering En’ya’s former kindness and not serving Amako. You, sir, having abandoned En’ya, your former master, and submitted to Amako, lack the righteousness of a samurai. My brother, cherishing his chrysanthemum pledge, gave up his life and traveled one hundred ri: this is the ultimate sincerity. You, sir, seeking favor with Amako, have tormented your own kin and caused his unnatural death: this is to lack the sincer- ity of a friend. Tsunehisa forced him to stay here; but if you had remembered your long-standing friendship, you would secretly have shown the utter sincerity of Zuo with Shang Yang. Instead you were driven by wealth and fame—this dif- fers from the way of a samurai house and must be the way of the House of Amako as well. No wonder my brother had no wish to linger here. Now I, valuing loyalty, have come. Leave behind you a name stained by unrighteousness!” He had not finished speaking when he drew his sword and struck in one motion. Tanji fell with a single blow. Before the retain- ers could raise an alarm, Samon escaped without a trace. It is said that Amako Tsunehisa heard the story and, moved by the warmth of the brothers’ loyalty, chose not to pursue Samon. Truly, one must not form bonds of friendship with a shallow man.

N O T E S

1. The nature of Samon’s and Soemon’s relationship has been debated by Japanese scholars. The most persuasive arguments in favor of a

homosexual reading have been offered by Matsuda Osamu, “‘Kikka

no chigiri’ no ron: Ugetsu monogatari no saihyoka (2),” Bungei to shiso 28 (1963); and Uzuki Hiroshi, Ugetsu Monogatari hyoshaku, Nihon koten hyoshaku zenchushaku sosho (Tokyo: Kadokawa, 1969), pp.

88 book one

135–136. Neither of them mentions the title of the story in this con-

text, although it is the title that clinches the matter. The most thor-

ough treatment I have found in English is in Timon Screech, Sex

in the Floating World: Erotic Images in Japan, 1700–1820 (Honolulu:

University of Hawai’i Press, 1999), pp. 151–154. See also Gary Leupp,

Male Colors: The Construction of Homosexuality in Tokugawa Japan

(Berkeley: University of California Press, 1996), p. 110; and Bernard

Faure, The Red Thread: Buddhist Approaches to Sexuality (Princeton,

N.J.: Princeton University Press, 1998), p. 259, n. 49, which quotes

Onna Imagawa oshiebumi (An Imagawa [copybook and book of max-

ims] Teaching Text for Women, 1778?): “On the ninth day of the ninth

moon occurs the union of the chrysanthemums, after a banquet dur-

ing which many wines are served; one celebrates that day by prac-

ticing the way of the youths.” “The way of the youths” translates

wakashudo (sexual relations between a man and a boy). 2. John Lyman Bishop, trans., “Fan Chü-ch’ing’s Eternal Friendship,” in

The Colloquial Short Story in China: A Study of the San-Yen Collections

(Cambridge Mass.: Harvard University Press, 1956), pp. 88–102.

3. The virtue of the mother of Mencius was proverbial.

4. Samon is quoting Confucius, Analects 12:5.

5. “military texts”: refers to the seven Chinese military classics, the best

known of which is Sunzi, Sunzi bing fa (The Art of War, sixth century

B.C.E.).

6. Omi Province corresponds to the modern Shiga Prefecture. 7. This sentiment derives from Mencius 2.A.6., in which Mencius

argues that humans are altruistic by nature.

8. “Onoe”: can mean simply “mountaintop” or refer to the Onoe district

of Kakogawa. The text alludes to a poem composed in 1171 by Priest

Gen’yu:

The blossoms at Onoe [or, on the summit] will have scattered

in the spring breeze—

waves lap at the row of cherries here on Takasago shore.

(Fuboku wakasho, vol. 25, no. 94)

Takasago is at the mouth of the Kako River.

9. An allusion to a poem by Mansei:

To what shall I compare the world?

Like a ship that rows out at dawn and vanishes, leaving no

wake. (Man’yoshu, no. 351)

the chrysanthemum vow 89

10. Akashi is a port in Hyogo Prefecture, on the Inland Sea, about twelve miles southeast of Kakogawa; Ushimado is a port in Okayama Prefec-

ture, about thirty-seven miles southwest of Kakogawa, and just north

of the island of Shodoshima; Azukijima, now called Shodoshima, is an island in the Inland Sea, in Kagawa Prefecture, about twenty miles

by sea southwest of Murotsu; and Murozu, now called Murotsu, is

a major port in the Inland Sea, in Hyogo Prefecture, between Ka- kogawa and Ushimado.

11. An allusion to a poem by Sagami:

When I saw the hagi’s lower leaves change color,

I knew before all else the fickle heart of man in autumn.

(Shinkokinshu, no. 1352)

Hagi (Lespedeza japonica) is Japanese bush clover.

12. An allusion to the “Suma” chapter of The Tale of Genji, in which the

pounding of the surf at Suma seems to be at Genji’s ear.

13. Akinari based this account on chapter 68, “Biography of Lord Shang,”

of Sima Qian’s Records of the Grand Historian. Gongshu Zuo was

prime minister of the kingdom of Wei (fourth century B.C.E.). Shang

Yang, or Lord Shang (d. 338 B.C.E.), one of the fathers of the Legalist

school of Chinese thought, left Wei and eventually reorganized the

state of Qin, paving the way for the unification of the Chinese empire

about a century later by the first Qin emperor (259–210 B.C.E.).

90 book one

t itle

The title, “Asaji ga yado,” denotes a neglected house overgrown with chigaya reeds. The wording recalls a waka in the “Kiri- tsubo” (The Paulownia Court) chapter of The Tale of Genji:

Even here above the clouds [at court] the autumn moon is

blurred with tears.

How then could it be clear, and how can you dwell, in a house

overgrown with reeds [asaji fu no yado]?1

The phrase asaji ga yado appears in chapter 137 of Yoshida Kenko’s Tsurezuregusa (Essays in Idleness, early fourteenth century), which is more closely related to Akinari’s story:

Does the love between men and women refer only to the

moments when they are in each other’s arms? The man who

grieves over a love affair broken off before it was fulfilled, who

bewails empty vows, who spends long autumn nights alone,

who lets his thoughts wander to distant skies, who yearns for

the past in a dilapidated house [asaji ga yado]—such a man

truly knows what love means.2

BOOK TWO

THE REED-CHOKED HOUSE

characters

Like “Shiramine” and “The Chrysanthemum Vow,” “The Reed-Choked House” has only two important characters, the fictional Katsushiro and Miyagi, supported by minor figures. Unlike the previous stories, however, this tale focuses on the lives of peasants, who were second on the Tokugawa social scale, below the samurai class but above artisans and merchants. Katsushiro and Miyagi are remarkably literary peasants, given to quoting and allud- ing to court poetry. This has the effect of elevating them to a status closer to that of the characters in the previous two stories.

places

“The Reed-Choked House” is centered on the village of Mama, now part of the city of Ichikawa, just east of Tokyo, in Chiba Prefecture (formerly, Shimosa Province). Mama is implicitly contrasted with the sophistication of Kyoto (the capital) and Omi Province (Shiga Prefecture).

t ime

Spring of 1455 to summer of 1461.

background

The historical events mentioned in “The Reed-Choked House” provide a factual background for the strange story, but the details have no direct bearing on the lives of Katsu- shiro and Miyagi.3

92 book two

aff init ies

“The Reed-Choked House” draws from a number of Chi- nese and Japanese sources, the most important being the story “In Which a Wife, After Her Death, Meets Her Former Husband” (27:24), in the late-Heian setsuwa collection Kon- jaku monogatari shu (Tales of Times Now Past, ca. 1120); Qu You’s “Aiqing zhuan” (The Story of Aiqing), in Jiandeng xin- hua (New Tales After Trimming the Lamp, 1378); Asai Ryoi’s adaptation of “Aiqing zhuan”: “Fujii Seiroku yujo Miyagino o metoru koto” (In Which Fujii Seiroku Marries the Cour- tesan Miyagino), in Otogiboko (Talisman Dolls, 1666); and the “Yom0giu” (The Wormwood Patch) chapter of The Tale of Genji. The story also contains parallels to Zeami’s no play Kinuta (The Fulling Block) and allusions to a number of other Japanese classics, including Ise monogatari (Tales of Ise, ca. 947) and Genji. Many waka from imperial anthologies and other sources are alluded to or quoted.

other observat ions

“The Reed-Choked House,” along with “A Serpent’s Lust,” was the basis for Mizoguchi Kenji’s film Ugetsu monogatari (1953).

I n the province of S village of Mama, lived a man named Katsushiro. Since his grandfather’s time, his family had lived here in comfort, holding many paddies and fields; but being by nature indifferent to details, Katsushiro came to dislike farm- ing as he grew up, finding it irksome, so that finally the family grew poor. Mortified to see that he had lost favor with many

the reed -choked house 93

Image has been suppressed

of his relatives, he considered various schemes to revive the family fortunes. In those days, a man named Soji of Sasabe came down from the capital every year to stock up on dyed silk from Ashikaga.4 Having distant relatives in the village, he often came to visit and had been on familiar terms with Katsu- shiro for some time. Katsushiro pleaded that he, too, wanted to become a merchant and go up to the capital. Sasabe agreed immediately. “Let me see, when will the next trip be?” he said. Delighted that he could now rely on Sasabe, Katsushiro sold off his remaining paddies, used the gold to buy a large supply of plain silk, and prepared for his journey to the capital.

Katsushiro’s wife, Miyagi, was a woman of arresting beauty, intelligence, and steady disposition. Dismayed to hear that he had bought merchandise and was going to the capital, she used every argument she could think of to dis- suade him; but she was helpless before his obstinacy, now worse than ever, and so, despite her misgivings about how she would fare in the future,5 she applied herself with alac- rity to his preparations. As they talked together that night about the painful separation to come, she said, “With no one to depend on, my woman’s heart will know the extremi- ties of sadness, wandering as though lost in the fields and mountains.6 Please do not forget me, morning or night, and come back soon. If only I live long enough, I tell myself,7 but in this life we cannot depend on the morrow, and so take pity on me in your stalwart heart.” He replied, “How could I linger in a strange land, riding on a drifting log? I shall return this autumn, when the arrowroot leaf turns over in the wind.8 Be confident and wait for me.” Thus he reassured her; the night sky brightened with dawn; and

l. 27 “riding on a drifting log”: signifies rootlessness and anxiety, as in the “Matsukaze” (The Wind in the Pines) chapter of The Tale of Genji (Mura- saki Shikibu, Genji monogatari, ed. Yamagishi Tokuhei, Nihon koten bungaku taikei, vol. 14 [Tokyo: Iwanami, 1958], p. 199):

How many autumns have come and gone as I was dwelling here— why now should I return, riding on a drifting log?

94 book two

leaving the East Country, where the roosters crow, he hur- ried toward the capital.9

In the summer of 1455, the shogun’s deputy in Kamakura, Lord Ashikaga Shigeuji, had a falling out with the family of Uesugi, his own deputy, and so when troops burned his pal- ace to the ground, he took refuge with an ally in Shimosa. From that moment, the lands east of the barrier were thrown into chaos, and each man did just as he pleased.10 The aged fled to the mountains and hid; the young were conscripted; women and children, hearing the rumors—“They will burn this place today! The enemy will attack tomorrow!”—fled weeping, now east, now west. Katsushiro’s wife, Miyagi, too, wanted to escape, but relying on her husband’s words—“Wait for me this fall”—she lived on, anxiously counting the days. Autumn came, but there was no word, not even in the wind. Sad and resentful that the heart of man proved to be as unre- liable as this world itself, she composed in her despondency:

“No one will report my misery, I fear—

oh decorated cock of Meeting Hill, tell him autumn too has

passed.”11

And yet she had no way to communicate with him, since many provinces separated them. Men’s hearts grew more villainous in the turbulence of the world. Passersby, noting Miyagi’s beauty, tried to seduce her with comforting words, but, firmly guarding her chastity, she would treat them dis- tantly, close the door, and refuse to meet them. Her maidser- vant departed; her meager savings melted away; and that year, too, came to a close. The New Year brought no peace. What is more, in the autumn of the old year the shogun had bestowed the flag on To no Tsuneyori,12 governor of Shimotsuke and lord of Gujo, Mino Province, who went down to the domain of Shimosa, made plans with his kinsman Chiba no Sanetane, and attacked; but Shigeuji’s forces defended their position resolutely, and so there was no end in sight. Bandits threw up

the reed -choked house 95

strongholds here and there, set fires, and pillaged. No haven remained in the Eight Provinces; the losses were appalling.13

Katsushiro accompanied Sasabe to Kyoto and sold all his silk. Because it was an age when the capital delighted in lux- ury, he made a good profit.14 As he prepared to return to the East Country, word spread that Uesugi troops had toppled the shogun’s deputy and then had pursued and attacked him. Katsushiro’s home village would be the battlefield of Zhoulu, bristling with shields and halberds. Even rumors close at hand are frequently untrue; his home was in a dis- tant land beyond myriad layers of white clouds.15 Anxiously, he left the capital at the start of the Eighth Month. Crossing the pass at Misaka in Kiso, he found that robbers had blocked the road, and to them he lost all his baggage.16 Furthermore, he heard reports that new barrier stations had been estab- lished here and there to the east, where even travelers were not allowed to pass. In that case, there would be no way to send any message at all. His house had surely been leveled by the fires of battle. His wife would no longer be alive. His village would have become a den of ogres, he told himself, and so he turned back toward the capital; but as he entered the province of Omi, he suddenly felt unwell and came down with a fever. In a place called Musa lived a wealthy man named Kodama Yoshibei.17 This being the birthplace of Sasabe’s wife, Katsushiro pleaded for help; and Kodama did not turn him away, but summoned a physician and devoted himself to Katsushiro’s care. Feeling well again at last, Kat- sushiro thanked Kodama deeply for his great kindness. He was still unsteady on his feet, however, and so he found him- self still there when they greeted the New Year. Presently he made new friends in the town, where he was admired for his unaffected honesty, and formed close ties with Kodama and many others. Thereafter, he would call on Sasabe in the capi-

l. 9 Zhoulu: in the present Hebei Province, China, the scene of an ancient battle involving the legendary Yellow Emperor.

96 book two

tal and then return to stay with Kodama in Omi, and seven years passed like a dream.

In 1461 the struggle between the Hatakeyama brothers in the province of Kawachi showed no sign of ending, and the turmoil approached the capital.18 What is more, corpses piled up in the streets as an epidemic swept through the city in the spring. Thinking that a cosmic epoch must be coming to an end, the people lamented the impermanence of all things.19 Katsushiro pondered his situation: “Reduced to this pointless existence, how long should I drag out my life, and for what, lingering in this distant land, depending on the generosity of people with whom I have no ties of blood? It is my own faithless heart that has let me pass long years and months in a field overgrown with the grass of forgetfulness, unmindful even of the fate of her I left at home.20 Even if she is no longer of this world and has gone to the Land of the Dead, I would seek out her remains and construct a burial mound.” Thus he related his thoughts to those around him and, during a break in the rains of the Fifth Month, said farewell. Traveling for more than ten days, he arrived at his village.

Although the sun had already sunk in the west and the rain clouds were so dark that they seemed about to burst, he doubted he could lose his way, having lived for so long in the village, and so he pushed through the fields of sum- mer; but the jointed bridge of old had fallen into the rap- ids, so that there could be no sound of a horse’s hoofs;21 he could not find the old paths because the farmland had been abandoned to grow wild, and the houses that used to stand there were gone. Scattered here and there, a few remaining houses appeared to be inhabited, but they bore no resem- blance to those in former days. “Which is the house I lived in?” he wondered, standing in confusion, when about forty yards away, he saw, by the light of stars peeking through the clouds, a towering pine that had been riven by lightning. “The tree that marks the eaves of my house!” he cried and joyfully moved forward. The house was unchanged and appeared

the reed -choked house 97

to be occupied, for lamplight glimmered through a gap in the old door. “Does someone else live here now? Or is she still alive?” His heart pounding, he approached the entrance and cleared his throat. Someone inside heard immediately and asked, “Who is there?” He recognized his wife’s voice, though greatly aged. Terrified that he might be dreaming, he said, “I have come back. How strange that you should still be living here alone, unchanged, in this reed-choked moor!”22 Recognizing his voice, she quickly opened the door. Her skin was dark with grime, her eyes were sunken, and long strands of hair fell loose down her back. He could not believe that she was the same person. Seeing her husband, she burst into wordless tears.

Stunned, Katsushiro could say nothing for a time. Finally he spoke: “I would never have let the years and months slip by had I thought that you were still living here like this. One day years ago, when I was in the capital, I heard of fight- ing in Kamakura—the shogun’s deputy had been defeated and taken refuge in Shimosa. The Uesugi were in eager pur- suit, people said. The next day, I took my leave from Sasabe and, at the beginning of the Eighth Month, left the capital. As I came along the Kiso road, I was surrounded by a large band of robbers, who took my clothing and all my money. I barely escaped with my life. Then the villagers said that trav- elers were being stopped at new barriers on the Tokaido and Tosando.23 They also said that a general had gone down from the capital the day before, joined forces with the Uesugi, and set out for battle in Shimosa. Our province had long since been razed by fire, and every inch trampled under horses’ hoofs, they said, and so I could only think that you had been reduced to ashes and dust or had sunk into the sea. Return- ing to the capital, I lived on the generosity of others for these seven years. Seized in recent days with constant longing, I returned, hoping at least to find your remains, but I never dreamed that you would still be living in this world. I wonder if you might not be the Cloud of Shaman Hill or the Appa-

98 book two

rition in the Han Palace.”24 Thus he rambled on, tediously repeating himself.

Drying her tears, his wife said, “After I bid you farewell, the world took a dreadful turn, even before the arrival of the autumn I relied on,25 and the villagers abandoned their houses and set out to sea or hid in the mountains. Most of the few who remained had hearts of tigers or wolves and sought, I suppose, to take advantage of me now that I was alone. They tempted me with clever words, but even if I had been crushed like a piece of jade, I would not imitate the per- fection of the tile, and so I endured many bitter experiences. The brilliance of the Milky Way heralded the autumn, but you did not return.26 I waited through the winter, I greeted the New Year, and still there was no word. Now I wanted to go to you in the capital, but I knew that a woman could not hope to pass the sealed barrier gates where even men were turned away; and so, with the pine at the eaves, I waited vainly in this house, foxes and owls my companions, until today.27 I am happy now that my long resentment has been dispelled. No one else can know the resentment of one who dies of longing, waiting for another to come.”28 With this, she began to sob again. “The night is short,” he said, com- forting her, and they lay down together.

He slept soundly, weary from his long journey and cooled through the night as the paper in the window sipped the pine-breeze. When the sky brightened in the fifth watch of night, he felt chilly, though still in the world of dreams, and groped for the quilt that must have slipped off. A rustling sound wakened him. Feeling something cold dripping on his face, he opened his eyes, thinking that rain was seeping

l. 10 “ crushed . . . tile”: that is, “I would not prolong my life [the perfect tile] by being unfaithful, even though death [the crushed jade] might be the consequence.”

l. 26 “fifth watch”: the time between sunset and sunrise was divided into five equal watches of about two hours each. The fifth watch corresponded roughly to the period from 4:00 A.M. until daybreak.

the reed -choked house 99

in: the roof had been torn off by the wind, and he could see the waning moon lingering dimly in the sky. The house had lost its shutters. Reeds and plumed grasses grew tall through gaps in the decaying floorboards, and the morning dew dripped from them, saturating his sleeves. The walls were draped with ivy and arrowroot; the garden was buried in creepers—even though fall had not come yet, the house was a wild autumn moor.29 And where, come to think of it, had his wife gone, who had been lying with him? She was nowhere in sight. Perhaps this was the doing of a fox? But the house, though dilapidated in the extreme, was certainly the one he used to live in: from the spacious inner rooms to the rice-storehouse beyond, it still retained the form that he had favored. Dumbfounded, he felt as though he had lost his footing; but then he considered carefully: since the house had become the dwelling place of foxes and raccoon-dogs—a wild moor—perhaps a spirit had appeared before him in the form of his wife. Or had her ghost, longing for him, come back and communed with him? It was just as he had feared. He could not even weep. “I alone am as I was before,” he thought as he walked around.30 In the space that was her bedroom, someone had taken up the floor, piled soil into a mound, and protected the mound from rain and dew. The ghost last night had come from here—the thought fright- ened him and also made him long for her. In a receptacle for water offerings stood a stick with a sharpened end, and to this was attached a weathered piece of Nasuno paper,31 the writing faded and in places hard to make out, but certainly in his wife’s hand. Without inscribing a dharma name or date, she had, in the form of a waka, movingly stated her feelings at the end:

l. 29 “dharma name” (homyo or kaimyo): a posthumous name, usually com- posed by a Buddhist priest and inscribed on a gravestone with the date of death.

100 book two

“Nevertheless, I thought, and so deceived

I have lived on until today!”32

Realizing now for the first time that his wife was dead, he cried out and collapsed. It added to his misery that he did not even know what year, what month and day, she had met her end. Someone must know, he thought, and so, drying his tears, he stepped outside. The sun had climbed high in the sky. He went first to the nearest house and met the master, a man he had never seen before. On the contrary, the man asked him what province he had come from. Katsushiro addressed him respectfully: “I was the master of the house next door, but to make my living I spent seven years in the capital. When I came back last night, the house had fallen into ruins and no one was living there. Apparently my wife has left this world, for I found a burial mound, but there is no date, which makes my grief all the more intense. If you know, sir, please tell me.” The man said, “A sad story indeed. I came to live here only about one year ago and know nothing of the time when she was living there. It would seem that she lost her life long before that. All the people who used to live in this village fled when the fighting began; most of those who live here now moved in from somewhere else. There is one old man who seems to have lived here for a long time. Occasionally he goes to that house and performs a service to comfort the spirit of the departed. This old man must know the date.” Katsushiro said, “And where does the old man live?” The man told him, “He owns a field thickly planted with hemp, about two hundred yards from here, toward the beach, and there he lives in a small hut.” Rejoicing, Katsu- shiro went to the house, where he found an old man of about seventy, terribly bent at the waist, sitting in front of a hearth on a round, wicker cushion and sipping tea. Recognizing Katsushiro, the old man said, “Why have you come back so late, my boy?” Katsushiro saw that he was the old man called Uruma, who had lived in the village for a long time.

the reed -choked house 101

Katsushiro congratulated the old man on his longevity and then related everything in detail, from going to the capital and remaining there against his true desires, to the strange events of the night before, and expressed his deep gratitude to the old man for raising a burial mound and performing services there. He could not stop his tears. The old man said, “After you went far away, soldiers began to brandish shields and halberds in the summer; the villagers ran off; the young were conscripted; and, as a result, the mulberry fields turned quickly into grasslands for foxes and rabbits.33 Only your vir- tuous wife, honoring your pledge to return in the fall, would not leave home. I, too, stayed inside and hid, because my legs

102 book two

Image has been suppressed

had grown weak and I found it hard to walk two hundred yards. I have seen many things in my years, but I was deeply moved by the courage of that young woman, even when the land had become the home of tree spirits and other ghastly monsters.34 Autumn passed, the New Year came, and on the tenth day of the Eighth Month of that year she departed. In my pity for her, I carried soil with my own hands, buried the coffin, and, using as a grave marker the brush marks she left at the end, performed a humble service with offer- ings of water; but I could not inscribe the date, not knowing how to write, and I had no way to seek a posthumous name, as the temple is far away. Five years have passed. Hearing

“ Leaning on his staff,

he led the way.”

the reed -choked house 103

Image has been suppressed

your story now, I am sure that the ghost of your virtuous wife came and told you of her long-held resentment. Go there again and carefully perform a memorial service.” Leaning on his staff, he led the way. Together they prostrated themselves before the mound, raised their voices in lamentation, and passed the night invoking the Buddha’s name.

Because they could not sleep, the old man told a story: “Long, long ago, even before my grandfather’s grandfather was born, there lived in this village a beautiful girl named Tegona of Mama.35 Since her family was poor, she wore a hempen robe with a blue collar; her hair was uncombed, and she wore no shoes; but with a face like the full moon and a smile like a lovely blossom, she surpassed the fine ladies in the capital, wrapped in their silk brocades woven with threads of gold. Men in the village, of course, and even officials from the capital and men in the next province, all came courting and longed for her. This caused great pain for Tegona, who sank deep in thought and, the better to requite the love of many men, threw herself into the waves of the inlet here. People in ancient times sang of her in their poems and passed down her story as an example of the sadness of the world. When I was a child, my mother told the story charmingly, and I found it very moving; but how much sadder is the heart of this departed one than the young heart of Tegona of old!” He wept as he spoke, for the aged cannot control their tears. Katsushiro’s grief needs no description. Hearing this tale, he expressed his feelings in the clumsy words of a rustic:

“Tegona of Mama, in the distant past—

this much they must have longed for her, Tegona of Mama.”

It can be said that an inability to express even a fragment of one’s thoughts is more moving than the feelings of one skilled with words.

This is a tale passed down by merchants who traveled often to that province and heard the story there.

104 book two

N O T E S

1. Murasaki Shikibu, Genji monogatari, ed. Yamagishi Tokuhei, Nihon

koten bungaku taikei, vol. 14 (Tokyo: Iwanami, 1958), p. 41.

2. Yoshida Kenko, Essays in Idleness: The “Tsurezuregusa” of Kenko, trans. Don- ald Keene (New York: Columbia University Press, 1967), pp. 117–118.

3. George Sansom provides a good summary of the “absurd situation”

in A History of Japan, vol. 2, 1334–1615 (Stanford, Calif.: Stanford Uni-

versity Press, 1961), p. 241.

4. Sasabe was a village northwest of Kyoto, later incorporated into the

city of Fukuchiyama; Ashikaga, in Ibaraki Prefecture, north of Tokyo,

was noted for its dyed silk.

5. An allusion to an anonymous, alternative version of Man’yoshu, no. 2985:

Though I know not how I will fare in the [catalpa bow] future,

my heart is with you.

6. An allusion to a poem by Sosei, who, having taken holy vows, won-

ders where to live away from society:

Where shall I loathe this world?

Whether in fields or in mountains my heart will surely wan-

der. (Kokinshu, no. 947)

7. An allusion to a poem by Shirome: “Composed when parting from

Minamoto no Sane at Yamazaki, as he set out for the hot springs of

Tsukushi”:

If only life obeyed the wishes of our hearts

what pain would we feel in our partings? (Kokinshu, no. 387)

8. This sentence contains a pun on kaeru, which means both “to return”

and “to turn over.” Arrowroot, being one of the “seven autumn

grasses,” signifies autumn.

9. “roosters crow” (tori ga naku): a pillow-word for Azuma, the East

Country, an old name for the region now called Kanto, or greater Tokyo. The image is further enriched by the truism that roosters crow

at dawn and the fact that the word “Azuma” is often written with char-

acters signifying “my wife.”

10. “lands east of the barrier”: refers to the eight provinces to the east of

the barrier station at Hakone: Sagami, Musashi, Awa, Kazusa, Shi-

mosa, Hitachi, Shimotsuke, and Kozuke (corresponding to the mod-

the reed -choked house 105

ern Kanto prefectures of Kanagawa, Tokyo, Saitama, Chiba, Ibaraki, Tochigi, and Gumma).

11. “decorated cock of Meeting Hill”: cocks decorated with mulberry-cloth

ribbons were occasionally sent to the barrier stations around Kyoto,

including the Osaka Barrier, as part of a purification ritual. On the Osaka Barrier, see the introduction to “Shiramine.” Since “Osaka” (the barrier, not the city) means “Meeting Hill,” poets frequently used

the name in a double sense, as in this anonymous poem:

Does the decorated cock of Meeting Hill, like me,

long for someone, and that is why we cry in vain? (Kokinshu, no. 536)

and in a poem by Kan’in: “Sent to the Middle Counselor Lord Mina-

moto no Noboru, when he was Vice-Governor of Omi”:

If only I were the decorated cock of Meeting Hill,

crying, I could watch you come and go. (Kokinshu, no. 740)

12. “bestowed the flag on”: in the autumn of 1455, the shogun Ashikaga

Yoshimasa appointed Tsuneyori (1401–1494), a leading poet and

commander, to subdue the disloyal Shigeuji and his supporters.

13. Shimotsuke corresponds to the modern Tochigi Prefecture; Mino

Province, to Gifu Prefecture.

“domain of Shimosa”: Akinari mistakenly wrote “Shimotsuke” instead of Shimosa.

“Eight Provinces”: see note 10.

14. Yoshimasa’s reign (1443–1490) was a golden age in culture, as the

shogun led the way in promoting garden design, architecture, no the- ater, and other arts. His Ginkaku (Silver Pavilion) in Kyoto, with its

splendid garden, is the most famous relic of the period.

15. An allusion to a poem by Ki no Tsurayuki: “Composed for a person

who was going to Michinokuni”:

Even far away where white clouds pile in myriad layers

let not your heart grow distant from him who thinks of you.

(Kokinshu, no. 380)

16. Misaka in Kiso is an old name for Magome Pass, on the Nakasendo (highway through the mountains between Kyoto and Edo), at the bor-

der of Gifu and Nagano Prefectures.

17. Musa is now part of the city of Omi Hachiman, Shiga Prefecture, on the shore of Lake Biwa, about twenty miles northeast of Kyoto.

106 book two

18. The Hatakeyama brothers Masanaga and Yoshinari fought for some

years over which should hold the office of shogun’s deputy (kanrei).

Their dispute was one of several that led to the infamous Onin War (1467–1477), which devastated the capital. Kawachi corresponds to the

eastern part of the modern Osaka Prefecture, just southwest of Kyoto. 19. “cosmic epoch” (ko): kalpa, a Sanskrit word for an almost unimagin-

ably long period of time. Here the reference is to the second kalpa,

during which there is life on earth. Epidemics and famines occurred

throughout Japan in the 1450s. This sentence echoes Kamo no Cho- mei’s description of Kyoto in 1182, in Hojoki (An Account of a Ten- Foot-Square Hut, 1212).

20. “grass of forgetfulness” (wasuregusa): a kind of daylily (Hemerocallis

aurantiaca), mentioned in section 100 of Tales of Ise: “Long ago, as a

man was passing by the Koroden, a high-ranking lady sent a message out to him, saying, Do you refer to the grass of forgetfulness as grass

of remembrance? to which he replied with a poem:

This may look to be a field overgrown with grass of forgetful-

ness,

but it is remembrance, and I shall continue to depend on you.”

21. An allusion to an anonymous poem:

I wish for a horse whose hoofs would make no sound.

Across the jointed bridge of Mama in Katsushika would I

always go to her. (Man’yoshu, no. 3387)

22. This paragraph contains several echoes of the “Yomogiu” (The Worm-

wood Patch) chapter of The Tale of Genji, in which the Hitachi Prin-

cess has waited for ten years for another visit from Genji (Murasaki

Shikibu, Genji monogatari, NKBT, vol. 15, pp. 155–160). Her mansion

has fallen into ruin, most of her servants have left, and she is almost

without resources, when Genji happens to notice her dilapidated

estate. He sends in his attendant, Koremitsu, to learn whether the

princess still lives there. Koremitsu first lets his presence be known

by clearing his throat, in response to which an aged voice asks, “Who

is there? Who are you?” He recognizes the voice, that of an attendant.

After identifying himself, he says, “If the princess has not changed,

then my lord’s desire to visit her, too, has not ceased.” The aged voice

replies, “If my lady had changed, would she still be living in this reed-

choked moor [asaji ga hara]?” When Genji finally meets the princess

again, he composes a waka for her:

the reed -choked house 107

I found it hard to ignore the waves of wisteria blooms

because the pine they drape on is the mark of your waiting

house.

23. Kiso road refers to the section of the Nakasendo between Nakatsu- gawa (Gifu Prefecture) and Shiojiri (Nagano Prefecture). The Tokaido ran along the Pacific coast between Kyoto and Edo; the Tosando, through the mountains between Kyoto and the northern tip of

Honshu. 24. “Cloud of Shaman Hill”: refers to a story in the Wenxuan (Anthology

of Writing, sixth century), edited by Xiao Tong, in which King Xiang of

Chu dreams that he has slept with a woman at Shaman Hill (Wushan,

in Sichuan) who turns out to have been a cloud (Sun Yü, “The Kao

T’ang Fu,” in The Temple and Other Poems, trans. Arthur Waley [New

York: Knopf, 1923], pp. 65–72).

“Apparition in the Han Palace”: derives from a story in the Han

shu (History of the Former Han Dynasty), by Ban Gu (32–62), in which

the Han emperor Wu, grieving the death of a beloved lady, com-

mands a sorcerer to summon her spirit.

Both tales bespeak a confusion of illusion and reality.

25. “autumn I relied on” (tanomu no aki): a pun on tanomu no hi (the

day relied upon / the day of the fruits of the field), a harvest and gift-

exchanging festival on the first day of the Eighth Month. Compare a

poem by the Sessho Daijodaijin: “On the returning geese”:

Do not forget, oh geese who rise from the sheltering marsh

by the fields,

the wind on the rice leaves in the evening of autumn.

(Shinkokinshu, no. 61)

26. The Milky Way, which brightens as the air becomes less humid in the

autumn, is associated with the Tanabata festival, the seventh night of

the Seventh Month, the only night when, in Sino-Japanese legend,

the Oxherd (the star Altair) may cross the River of Heaven (the Milky

Way) to meet his love, the Weaver Maid (the star Vega).

27. Miyagi employs the usual pun on matsu, which means both “pine

tree” and “to wait.” The pine also echoes the tree that leads Katsu-

shiro to his house, and Genji to the mansion of the Hitachi Princess, where he finds foxes and owls.

28. An allusion to a poem by Taira no Kanemori:

108 book two

If unknown to him I die of longing while I wait for him to come,

for what shall I say I have exchanged my life? (Goshuishu, no. 656)

29. An allusion to a poem by Priest Henjo:

The house is ruined, the people are grown old—

garden and brushwood-fence have both become a wild

autumn moor. (Kokinshu, no. 248)

30. An allusion to a poem by Ariwara no Narihira:

The moon is not that moon nor the spring the spring of old,

and I alone am as I was before. (Tales of Ise, sec. 4; Kokinshu, no. 747)

31. Nasuno, in Shimotsuke Province (Tochigi Prefecture), produced a

thick, sturdy paper of high quality.

32. Miyagi’s waka is borrowed from the collection of the courtier and

poet Fujiwara no Atsutada (905?–943): Gon Chunagon Atsutada kyo shu, in Hanawa Hokiichi, comp., Gunsho ruiju (Classified Collection of Vari- ous Books) (1819), vol. 9, no. 235.

33. The proverb Soden henjite sokai to naru (mulberry fields [soden] change into blue seas [sokai]) refers to the world’s mutability.

34. “home of tree spirits and other ghastly monsters”: another echo of

the mansion of the Hitachi Princess in “The Wormwood Patch” chap-

ter of The Tale of Genji.

35. The legend of Tekona (or Tegona, the pronunciation that Akinari pre-

ferred) of Mama is told in the Man’yoshu, nos. 431–433, 1807–1808. The old man’s narrative is based on a long poem by Takahashi Mushi-

maro, “Of the Maiden of Mama of Katsushika” (Man’yoshu, no. 1807). See The Manyoshu: The Nippon Gakujutsu Shinkokai Translation of One Thousand Poems (New York: Columbia University Press, 1965),

pp. 223–224.

the reed -choked house 109

t itle

The title, “Muo no rigyo,” comes from the first paragraph of the story, in which Kogi gives this name to one of his paintings.

characters

“The Carp of My Dreams” has only one important character, the Buddhist monk Kogi, who narrates the story within the story. According to the setsuwa collection Kokon chomonju (Stories Heard from Writers Old and New, 1254), edited by Tachibana Narisue, there was a painter-monk named Kogi at Miidera, but nothing else is known of him.

places

Miidera, also known as Onjoji, an important Buddhist temple established in the seventh century on a hill overlooking Lake Biwa, in what is now the city of Otsu, just east of Kyoto, is the

BOOK TWO

THE CARP OF MY DREAMS

setting of “The Carp of My Dreams.” During his underwater journey around Lake Biwa, Kogi passes a number of famous sights, including several of the famous Eight Views of Lake Biwa (Omi hakkei):

Mount Nagara: behind Miidera, west of the southern end of

Lake Biwa.

Great Bay of Shiga: southwestern part of Lake Biwa, offshore

from the former Shiga capital. This section echoes a poem

by the monk Jakuren:

Strollers tread the ice along the shore,

crossing without getting wet at the Great Bay of Shiga.

(Shokukokinshu, no. 641)

Mount Hira: west of Lake Biwa. “Evening Snow at Hira” is

one of the Eight Views of Lake Biwa.

Katada: village on the western shore of Lake Biwa, now part

of the city of Otsu. “Wild Geese Descending at Katada” is one of the Eight Views.

Mount Kagami (mirror-mountain): southeast of Lake Biwa.

Okino Isle: slightly southwest of the center of Lake Biwa.

Chikubu Isle: near the northern end of Lake Biwa, famous for

its Benzaiten shrine, enclosed by a red-lacquered fence.

Asazuma Boat: ferry connecting the Nakasendo (highway through the mountains between Kyoto and Edo), on the

northeastern shore of Lake Biwa, with Otsu, on the south- western shore. Onboard prostitutes provided companion-

ship for travelers.

Mount Ibuki: east of the northern end of Lake Biwa, paired

with the Asazuma Boat in a poem by Saigyo:

It makes me anxious: will the Asazuma Boat not face

the brunt of the gale blowing down from Mount Ibuki?

(Sankashu, no. 1005)

the carp of my dreams 111

Yabase: village on the southeastern shore of Lake Biwa, con-

nected by ferry to Otsu. “Sailboats at Yabase” is one of the Eight Views.

Seta: river at the southernmost tip of Lake Biwa, spanned

by a bridge. “Sunset at Seta Bridge” is one of the Eight

Views. Carp-Kogi is frightened by the guard’s footfalls on the planks of the bridge.

t ime

Summer (peach season), one year during the Encho era (923–931).

background

In contrast to the late twelfth and mid-fifteenth centuries, during which the first three stories take place, the Encho era, a little more than a century into the Heian period (794–1185) and the time frame of “The Carp of My Dreams,” was a period of relative stability and calm in Japan.

There was a priest named Enchin, or Chisho Daishi (814– 891), who restored Miidera and was famous for his Buddhist paintings.

aff init ies

Akinari adapted “The Carp of My Dreams” from two Chi- nese stories in Ming collections: “Xue lu-shi yu fu zheng xian” (Junior Magistrate Xue’s Piscine Metamorphosis), in Feng Menglong’s Xingshi hengyan (Constant Words to Awaken the World, 1628), and “Yu fu ji” (Account of a Piscine Metamorphosis), in Lu Ji’s Gujin shuohai (Sea of Tales Old and New, sixteenth century).1 Uzuki Hiroshi has identified

112 book two

three stories—“Concerning Priest Myotatsu of Ryugeji in Dewa Province” (13:13), “In Which a Man from the Province of Settsu Who Killed an Ox Returns from the Underworld Through the Power of Releasing Living Beings” (20:25), and “In Which a Man from the Province of Sanuki Goes to the Underworld and Comes Back” (20:17)—in the late-Heian set- suwa collection Konjaku monogatari shu (Tales of Times Now Past, ca. 1120) as being closely related to “The Carp of My Dreams,” in that they deal with people who come back from death because of merit accumulated by releasing captured creatures.2 Ultimately, the roots of the story can be traced back to two passages in the Chinese Taoist classic Chuang Tzu (fourth–third centuries B.C.E.):

Once Chuang Chou dreamt he was a butterfly, a butterfly

flitting and fluttering around, happy with himself and doing

as he pleased. He didn’t know he was Chuang Chou. Sud-

denly he woke up and there he was, solid and unmistakable

Chuang Chou. But he didn’t know if he was Chuang Chou

who had dreamt he was a butterfly, or a butterfly dreaming

he was Chuang Chou.3

Chuang Tzu and Hui Tzu were strolling along the dam of the

Hao River when Chuang Tzu said, “See how the minnows

come out and dart around where they please! That’s what

fish really enjoy!”

Hui Tzu said, “You’re not a fish—how do you know what

fish enjoy?”

Chuang Tzu said, “You’re not I, so how do you know I

don’t know what fish enjoy!”4

other observat ions

Kogi’s clockwise circuit of Lake Biwa—a kind of michiyuki— is a rhetorical tour de force and a masterpiece of imaginative,

the carp of my dreams 113

scenic description. Mishima Yukio called it “the ultimate in the poetry that Akinari attempted.”5

L ong ago, in the Encnamed Kogi, who was recognized as a master painter. He did not limit himself to painting buddhas, land- scapes, or birds and flowers. On days when he was free from temple chores, he would go out on the lake in a small boat and give money to fishermen in exchange for fish that they had caught with their nets and hooks, and then he would release the fish into the bay,6 watch them swim about, and paint them; and as he did this over the years, he became extremely precise and skilled. Once, as he concentrated on a painting, he grew sleepy and dreamed that he had gone into the water and was swimming about with all kinds of fish, large and small. As soon as he woke up, he painted exactly what he had seen and fastened the painting to his wall. He called it The Carp of My Dreams. Marveling at how wonderful his paintings were, people jostled for a place in line to acquire them, but Kogi, though he happily gave his flowers, birds, and landscapes to anyone who wanted them, stubbornly held on to his paintings of carp. Playfully he would say, “This monk will never give away the fish he has reared to ordinary laymen who kill living things and eat fresh meat.”7 Word of his paint- ings and of this joke spread throughout the realm.

One year he fell ill and, after seven days, suddenly closed his eyes, stopped breathing, and lost consciousness. His disci- ples and friends came together to grieve, but, finding that his chest was still a little warm, they gathered around him to keep watch, thinking that he might recover; and after three days, his arms and legs seemed to move a little, and he suddenly heaved a long sigh, opened his eyes, and sat up as though awakening from sleep. “I have forgotten human affairs for

114 book two

Image has been suppressed

a long time,” he said to the people around him. “How many days have passed?” His disciples said, “Master, you stopped breathing three days ago. People from throughout the tem- ple, and others you have always been close to, came to discuss your funeral, but noticing that your chest was still warm, we watched you without putting you in a coffin, and now that you have come back to life, we are all rejoicing that, fortunately, we did not bury you.” Kogi nodded: “Someone go to the house of our danapati the Taira officer and report that I have mysteriously come back to life. The officer is now pouring saké and preparing thinly sliced fish, but ask him to interrupt his banquet for a moment and come to the temple. Say that I will tell him a most unusual tale, and look closely at what everyone there is doing. Repeat exactly what I have told you, nothing else.” The messenger was dubious, but he went to the mansion, gave the message to an intermediary, and then stealthily looked inside. The officer, his younger brother Juro, his retainer Kamori, and others were seated in a circle, drink- ing saké. The messenger was startled, because the scene was exactly as his master had said it would be. When they heard the message, the people in the officer’s house were greatly surprised. Putting down his chopsticks, the officer went to the temple, attended by Juro and Kamori.

Raising his head from the pillow, Kogi thanked his visitor for coming, and the officer congratulated Kogi on his recovery. Then Kogi said, “Listen to what I have to say. Have you ever bought fish from that fisherman named Bunshi?” Startled, the officer replied, “Yes, I have indeed. How did you know?” Kogi said, “The fisherman entered your gate with a basket containing a fish more than three feet long. You were in the south wing, playing go with your younger brother. Kamori was sitting beside you, eating a large peach and watching the game. Delighted by the big fish that the man had brought,

l. 9 danapati (J. dan’otsu): the Sanskrit word for a lay believer who supports the monastic community with donations.

the carp of my dreams 115

you gave him a tray of peaches and shared your saké with him. The cook proudly took out the fish and cut it into thin slices. Am I right so far?” Hearing this, the officer and his men, suspicious and confused, pressed him to explain how he knew these things in such detail. Kogi told them.

“The suffering caused by my illness became unbearable. Unaware that I had stopped breathing, I leaned on my staff and went out through the gate, hoping to relieve the feverish- ness a little, whereupon my illness began to ease and I felt like a caged bird returning to the land of clouds. Making my way through mountains and villages, I arrived again at the edge of the lake. When I saw the pale-jade water, I felt reality slip away and thought that I would have a swim, and so, shed- ding my robe, I threw myself in, plunged to the depths, and swam here and there, frolicking as I pleased, even though I am not one who grew accustomed to the water as a child. I realize now that it was all a foolish dream. But a man cannot float in the water with the ease of a fish. I began to wish that I could disport myself like a fish. Nearby was a large fish, who said, ‘The master’s wish is easily granted. Please wait here.’ He disappeared into the depths, but soon a man wearing a crown and robes ascended toward me, sitting astride the same large fish and leading many other fish behind him. He said to me, ‘I bear a message from the Lake God: “You, old monk, have acquired much merit by releasing creatures that were captured by men. Now you have entered the water and wish to swim about like a fish. For a time, we will give you the garb of a golden carp and let you enjoy the pleasures of the water world. But you must be careful not to be tempted by the fragrance of bait, get caught on a line, and lose your life.”’ Having said this much, he disappeared. Astonished, I looked at myself, and found that I had acquired glowing, golden scales and turned into a carp.

“Not thinking this particularly strange, I swished my tail, moved my fins, and rambled about as I pleased.8 First I rode the waves that were raised by the wind blowing down from

116 book two

Mount Nagara, and then, wandering along the edge of the Great Bay of Shiga, I was startled by people strolling back and forth, so close to the water that their skirts got wet, and so I tried to dive in the depths where high Mount Hira casts its reflection, but I found it hard to hide myself when the fishing flares of Katada at night drew me as though I were dream- ing. The moon resting on the waters of the berry-black night shone clear on the peak of Mount Kagami and drove the shadows from the eighty corners of the eighty ports to cast a lovely scene.9 Okino Isle, Chikubu Isle—the vermillion fence reflected in the waves startled me. Soon I was awakened from my dreams among the reeds as the Asazuma Boat rowed out in the wind from Mount Ibuki; I dodged the practiced oar of the Yabase ferryman and many times was driven away by the bridge-guard of Seta. When the sun grew warm, I rose to the surface; when the wind was strong, I swam in the depths.

“Suddenly feeling hungry, I searched here and there for something to eat. I swam around frantically, unable to find anything, until I came upon the line that Bunshi was dan- gling in the water. His bait was wonderfully fragrant. Then I remembered the Lake God’s warning. I am a disciple of the Buddha. How should I stoop to eating fish bait, just because I have been unable to find food for a while? I swam away. With time, the hunger grew steadily worse, and I reconsid- ered, thinking: I can hardly bear it any longer. Even if I swal- lowed the bait, would I be so reckless as to get caught? I have known Bunshi for a long time; why should I hold back? I took the bait. Bunshi promptly hauled in the line and caught me. ‘Hey! What are you doing?’ I cried, but, pretending not to hear me, he passed a cord through my chin, tied up his boat in the reeds, placed me in a basket, and went in through your gate. You were in the south room, playing go with your younger brother. Kamori sat nearby, eating fruit. Seeing the large fish that Bunshi had brought, everyone was delighted and congratulated him. At that point, I spoke to all of you. ‘Have you forgotten Kogi? Release me, please! Let me go

the carp of my dreams 117

back to the temple,’ I cried, again and again, but you pre- tended not to hear and just clapped your hands in delight. The cook pressed both of my eyes hard with the fingers of his left hand, took up a well-sharpened knife in his right hand, placed me on the chopping block, and was about to cut, when I screamed in agony. ‘Is there any precedent for hurting a disciple of the Buddha this way? Help me, help me!’ I cried, but no one listened. When I felt that I was about to be cut, I awakened from my dream.”

Everyone was deeply moved and amazed. “Thinking about the master’s story,” said the officer, “I remember see- ing the fish’s mouth move each time, but there was no voice

118 book two

Image has been suppressed

at all. It is marvelous to have seen such a thing with my own eyes.” Sending a messenger running to his house, he had the remaining slices of fish thrown into the lake.

After this, Kogi recovered completely and lived for many years before he died of old age. As his end approached, he took the many carp that he had painted and released them into the lake, where the fish left the paper and silk to swim about in the water. For this reason, none of Kogi’s paintings survived. A disciple named Narimitsu inherited Kogi’s divine skill and became famous in his time. It is recorded in an old tale that he painted a chicken on a sliding door at the Kan’in Palace, and when a live chicken saw the painting, he kicked it.10

When I felt that I

was about to be cut,

I awakened from

my dream.”

the carp of my dreams 119

Image has been suppressed

N O T E S

1. The Tang story on which the former is based has been translated by

Lin Yutang as “The Man Who Became a Fish,” in Famous Chinese

Short Stories (New York: Day, 1948), pp. 273–278. On Chinese ver-

nacular fiction, see, for example, Feng Meng-Lung, ed., Stories from

a Ming Collection: Translations of Chinese Short Stories Published in the

Seventeenth Century, trans. Cyril Birch (New York: Grove, 1958); and

Patrick Hanan, The Chinese Vernacular Story (Cambridge, Mass.: Har-

vard University Press, 1981).

2. Uzuki Hiroshi, Ugetsu monogatari hyoshaku, Nihon koten hyoshaku zenchushaku sosho (Tokyo: Kadokawa, 1969), pp. 298–299.

3. Burton Watson, trans., Chuang Tzu: Basic Writings (New York: Colum-

bia University Press, 1964), p. 45.

4. Watson, trans., Chuang Tzu, p. 110.

5. Mishima Yukio, “Ugetsu monogatari ni tsuite,” in Mishima Yukio

zenshu (Tokyo: Shinchosha, 1975), vol. 25, p. 273. 6. In Buddhist teachings, releasing captured creatures is meritorious.

7. Taking life is the first of the five proscribed actions in Buddhism.

The others are stealing, licentiousness, lying, and consuming alco-

hol. These bad karma (actions) impede one’s gradual progress toward

enlightenment and buddhahood.

8. The michiyuki follows, studded with utamakura, as carp-Kogi swims clockwise around Lake Biwa and evokes famous sights from the point

of view of a fish.

9. “berry-black night” (nubatama no yoru): nubatama, the seed of the

blackberry lily (Belamcanda chinensis), also called leopard lily, is a pillow-

word conventionally used to modify the terms “night,” “black,” “dark-

ness,” “evening,” “hair,” and, by extension, “dream” and “moon.”

“eighty corners of the eighty ports” (yaso no minato no yasokuma):

yaso (eighty) here means “many”; yaso no minato could be a place-

name (Yaso Port), but I take it here to mean “many ports.”

10. “old tale”: story 11:16 in Narisue, Stories Heard from Writers Old and

New. Narimitsu probably lived in the middle of the tenth century.

The Kan’in Palace, originally the mansion of Fujiwara Fuyutsugu

(775–826), in Kyoto, served as an imperial palace in the twelfth and

thirteenth centuries.

120 book two

t itle

The title, “Bupposo,” refers to two different birds: bupposo, a broad-billed roller (Eurystomus orientalis), and konohazuku, the Japanese scops owl (Otsu scops japonicus). The call of the owl is thought to sound like buppan (Buddhist dharma) or bup- poso—Buddha, dharma, sa≈gha (the Buddha, his teachings, and the community of monks, nuns, and laity), which consti- tute the “Three Jewels” of Buddhism. Accordingly, this owl is sometimes called bupposo or sambocho (three-jewel bird).

characters

The number of characters in “The Owl of the Three Jew- els” expands beyond the one or two in the previous stories to include the fictional merchants Muzen and his son, the ghost of the famous poet Satomura Joha, the ghosts of Toyo- tomi Hidetsugu and his retainers, and Kobo Daishi, whose spirit hovers over the story, constantly in the minds of the characters and readers.

BOOK THREE

THE OWL OF THE THREE JEWELS

Kobo Daishi, or Kukai (774–835), the founder of the Shin- gon (True Word) sect of Buddhism, is perhaps the greatest figure in the history of Japanese religion. In the story, he is referred to as the “Great Teacher.” The honorific title Kobo Daishi (Great Teacher Who Spread the Dharma) was con- ferred on him posthumously by Emperor Daigo in 921.

Toyotomi Hidetsugu (1568–1595) was the nephew and adopted son of the national unifier Toyotomi Hideyoshi (1537–1598). Although Hidetsugu succeeded Hideyoshi as regent (kampaku) in 1592, he fell out of favor after the birth of Hideyoshi’s natural son, Hideyori, in 1593; two years later, he was ordered to commit suicide at Mount Koya with six- teen of his retainers. Hidetsugu had a deep interest in no, poetry, and other classics, but also was so bloodthirsty that he earned the nickname Sassho Kampaku (Killer Regent), a pun on sessho kampaku, in which the word sessho is the title of a regent who serves a child emperor. The Portuguese Jesuit missionary Luis Frois (1532–1597) reported that Hidetsugu “had one weakness, namely a passionate delight in killing.”1

Satomura Joha (1524–1602) was the leading poet of his time and the last major renga master. The title by which he identifies himself, Bridge of the Dharma (Hokkyo), was applied to holy men, especially those who were also writers, painters, or physicians who served as a “bridge” for ordinary people who sought to understand the dharma. Joha is known to have been invited to compose renga with Hidetsugu.

places

“The Owl of the Three Jewels” begins in Oka, now the town of Taki, located to the west of the Ise Shrines in Mie Prefec- ture. Muzen and his son travel to Kyoto and then to Mount Koya (Koyasan), where most of the story takes place.

Like “Shiramine” and “The Blue Hood,” “The Owl of the Three Jewels” includes a michiyuki:

122 book three

Nijo: district just to the south of the imperial palace in Kyoto. Having a second house at this location is a sign of Muzen’s

wealth.

Yoshino: mountainous area of Nara Prefecture, south of

Kyoto, celebrated since ancient times for its magnificent

cherry blossoms. Part of “A Serpent’s Lust” also takes

place in Yoshino.

Mount Koya: mountain with a vast complex of monasteries, the headquarters of the Shingon sect of Buddhism, about

sixty-two miles southwest of Kyoto, in Wakayama Prefec-

ture (formerly, Kii Province).

Tennokawa: village through which pilgrims coming from the

east passed on the road to Mount Koya. Mani: “holy mountain of Mani” (mani no miyama) some-

times refers to the whole of Mount Koya, but here may refer specifically to the mountain called Mani, east of the

Mount Koya temple complex. Mani is originally a Sanskrit word meaning “pure” or “jewel.”

t ime

Early summer in a year after 1616, early in the Tokugawa period: “more than eight hundred years” after the founding of Koyasan.

background

In 804, as a student monk, Kukai sailed to China, where he met with great success in his studies of esoteric Buddhism. Legend has it that, just before his return to Japan in 806, he threw a three-pronged vajra (J. sanko) toward Japan. It landed in a pine tree—the Vajra Pine (Sanko no matsu), which stands in the center of the main compound on Mount Koya. (The vajra [Sanskrit for “diamond”], originally an Indian

the owl of the three jewels 123

weapon resembling a two-headed mallet with three blades on each end, evolved in tantric and esoteric Buddhism into a ceremonial implement.) Kukai established the monastic complex at Mount Koya in 816. Most of the story takes place at the Lantern Hall (Torodo) in front of Kobo Daishi’s mau- soleum at Mount Koya, where his followers believe he lies in a state of animated suspension. Pilgrims to the Mausoleum recite the chant Namu Daishi Henjo Kongo: “I put my faith in the great teacher who brings light to all the people, Universal Adamantine Illuminator.”2

The Lantern Hall and Mausoleum are at some remove from the central compound at Koya, which is called the Platform (Danjo). About 5 acres in area, the Platform con- tains the Great Pagoda, the Golden Hall, other important buildings, and the Vajra Pine. A 1¼-mile path lined with thousands of gravestones, including those of some of the most famous figures of Japanese history, leads east from the Platform through giant cedars to the Mausoleum. The path, the Lantern Hall, the Mausoleum, and other buildings together are referred to as the Inner Sanctuary (Oku-no-in). The flames in the Lantern Hall are said to have burned con- tinuously since 1016. A narrow stream called the Tamagawa (Jewel River) flows in front of the Lantern Hall, where it is spanned by a short bridge.

Poetry in both Chinese and Japanese plays an important role in “The Owl of the Three Jewels.” Muzen is an amateur poet in the “haikai style,” which refers to a style of renga in which links of seventeen (5–7–5) and fourteen (7–7) sylla- bles alternate. Muzen’s verse, given in the story, could stand alone as a haiku or serve as the hokku (first link) of a linked- verse sequence. It was presumably composed by Akinari, who began writing and publishing haikai in his youth. The other poet in the tale is Joha. The prominence of poetry in the story, especially Joha’s explication of Kobo Daishi’s waka, reflects Akinari’s kokugaku interests.

124 book three

aff init ies

Several sources of inspiration for “The Owl of the Three Jew- els” have been identified: two stories in Qu You’s Jiandeng xinhua (New Tales After Trimming the Lamp, 1378); Asai Ryoi’s adaptation of one of them, “Yurei shosho o hyosu” (Ghosts Evaluate Various Generals), in Otogiboko (Talisman Dolls, 1666); “Fushimi Momoyama borei no gyoretsu no koto” (A Procession of Ghosts at Fushimi Momoyama), in Kai- dan tonoibukuro (Ghost Stories: A Sack of Courtly Bedclothes, 1768), edited by Oe Bunpa; Taiheiki (Record of Great Peace, fourteenth century); Oze Hoan’s Taikoki (Chronicle of the Taiko [Hideyoshi], 1617); and Hayashi Razan’s Honcho jinja ko (Studies of Japanese Shrines).

other observat ions

For an analysis of “The Owl of the Three Jewels,” see “Struc- ture of the Stories,” in the introduction.

The story echoes the indirect praise for the Tokugawa regime that appears in the Preface: “the ancient Tranquil Land” alludes, with an elegant old epithet for Japan (urayasu no kuni), to the tranquillity of the period and, with “ancient” (hisa- shiku), refers both to the unbroken line of emperors and to the long rule of the Tokugawa family, which had continued peace- fully for more than 150 years by the time the story was writ- ten. The indirect praise continues, as the first paragraph refers to the popularity and relative safety of domestic travel, which before the Tokugawa regime had been fraught with danger, as depicted in “The Reed-Choked House.” In a broader sense, the entire story pays tribute to the Tokugawa, who brought peace and stability to the country after the turbulent Toyotomi era, of which the story is such a vivid reminder. The praise is echoed again in the last story, “On Poverty and Wealth.”

the owl of the three jewels 125

I n the ancient Tranq tasks and in their leisure hours relax under blossoms in the spring, visit brocade forests in the fall, and, think- ing they must know Tsukushi of the unknown fires, rest their heads on rudders, and then turn eager thoughts to the peaks of Fuji and Tsukuba.3

In a village called Oka, in Ise, a man of the Hayashi clan transferred his affairs to his heir, shaved his head (though he had suffered no particular misfortune), changed his name to Muzen, and, being robust and free of any disease, looked forward to traveling here and there in his old age. Lamenting that his youngest son, Sakunoji, was boorish and inflexible by nature, he took the boy to stay for more than a month at his second house, in the Nijo district, thinking that he would show him how people of the capital behaved; then, late in the Third Month, they viewed the blossoms in the depths of Yoshino, where they rested for seven days at a temple he knew; and, being nearby, he thought that they would go also to Mount Koya, which they had never seen, and so they pushed their way through the lush green leaves of early summer, crossed the mountains from a place called Tennokawa, and arrived at the holy mountain of Mani. Exhausted from the steep path, they were surprised to see the sun beginning to set.

After worshipping at the Platform and all the various halls and mausoleums, they asked for lodging, but no one responded. When they questioned a passerby about the rules

l. 4 Tsukushi: an old name for the island of Kyushu. l. 4 “unknown fires” (shiranuhi): a pillow-word that conventionally modifies

Tsukushi. l. 5 “heads on rudders” (kajimakura): refers to a journey by ship. l. 8 “shaved his head”: signifies the taking of Buddhist vows. l. 10 Muzen: a Buddhist name meaning, literally, “dreamlike.”

126 book three

Image has been suppressed

of the place, they were told, “People with no connection to a temple or to a monks’ residence go down to the foot of the mountain to spend the night. No one puts up travelers for the night on this mountain.” What would they do? Although he was healthy, Muzen was an old man who had just toiled up a steep path, and now, hearing this, he felt completely spent. Sakunoji said, “It is growing dark, our legs are sore— how can we go back down that long road? A young person does not mind lying down on the grass, but I worry that you would take sick.” Muzen said, “The poignancy of travel lies in just this sort of thing. Even if we went down the mountain tonight, dejected, exhausted, and injuring our legs, we would not be back at home. There is no telling what awaits us on the road tomorrow, either. This mountain is the holiest place in Japan. There are no words to describe the boundless vir- tue of the Great Teacher. Having come this far, we must pass the night in prayer at a temple, asking for an easy rebirth in the next life, and now is the perfect opportunity—we shall spend the night praying at the Mausoleum.” Passing through the shadows on the path beneath the cedars, they ascended to the veranda of the Lantern Hall, which stands before the Mausoleum; spread out their rain gear to make a place to sit; and chanted calmly while the night gradually deepened, making them feel lonesome and desolate.

The temple grounds were an auspicious, holy place, a clearing one-third of a mile on each side without a shabby grove in sight, where even the smallest pebble had been swept away;4 but here, far removed from the temples, no sound of incantations, bells, or ringing-staffs could be heard. Luxuri- ant trees pushed through the clouds; the sound of water flow-

l. 29 “incantations” (J. darani, Skt. dharaçi): Sanskrit phrases—the “true words” of Shingon—believed to have mystical power.

l. 29 “ringing-staffs” (shaku[jo]): wooden staffs with brass heads, decorated with metal loops that ring when moved. Originally used by itinerant holy men in India to frighten off snakes, they evolved into ceremonial staffs carried by priests.

the owl of the three jewels 127

ing beside the path was light and clear, deepening the melan- choly. Unable to sleep, Muzen spoke: “The Great Teacher’s godlike moral influence brings enlightenment even to the soil, rocks, grass, and trees, and coming down to us today after more than eight hundred years it is ever more splen- did and noble. Among his many achievements all around the country is this mountain, the greatest of all Buddhist temples. When the Teacher was living, he crossed to distant China, where something happened that moved him deeply. Saying ‘Wherever this lands will be the holy spot from which I shall spread my Way,’ he threw a vajra into the far-off sky, and this mountain is where it came to rest. I have heard that it lodged in the Vajra Pine at the front of the Platform. They say there is no grass, tree, spring, or rock on this mountain that is not sacred. That we are able unexpectedly to take lodgings here this night is the result of a happy bond, transcending a single life.5 Although you are young, you must never neglect your faith.” He spoke softly, his voice clear and wistful.

In the woods behind the Mausoleum, it seemed, a bird cried buppan, buppan, and the echo sounded close at hand. Muzen felt suddenly wide awake: “Extraordinary. The bird that just sang must be the one called bupposo. I heard a long time ago that it nests on this mountain, but I have never met anyone who had actually heard its voice. The fact that we have been able to hear this while we lodge here tonight may be an omen that our misdeeds will vanish and we will take good karma into the next life. They say that this bird chooses immaculate places to live. It is well known that it nests on Mount Kasho in the province of Kanzuke, Mount Futara in the province of Shimozuke, the peak of Daigo in Yamashiro, Mount Shinaga in Kawachi,6 and especially on this mountain, as a gatha poem by the Great Teacher says:

l. 32 “gatha poem” (shige): praise (Skt. gatha) for the Buddha’s virtue and an explanation of his teachings, in the form of a Chinese poem.

128 book three

In the quiet forest, sitting alone in my hut at dawn

I hear the call of the Three Jewels in one bird.

The bird has a voice, I have a mind—

voice, mind, clouds, water, all perfectly enlightened.7

Another old poem says:

As the peak of Matsuno-o quietly greets the dawn

I look up and hear the bird cry bupposo.8

It has been handed down that, long ago, the gods of Mat- suno-o commanded this bird always to serve the priest Enro of Saifukuji, because he was without equal as a believer in the Lotus Sutra, and so we know that the bird lives in that sacred precinct as well.9 Tonight, strangely enough, we have already heard the voice of the bird. How can I fail to be moved in these circumstances?”10 After cocking his head in thought for a time, he recited a seventeen-syllable verse in the haikai style, of which he had long been fond:

“The cry of the bird is mysterious, too—lush foliage on the

secret mountain.”11

Taking out his travel-inkstone, he wrote down the verse by lantern light, then strained his ears in hopes of hear- ing the voice of the bird again, when, to his surprise, he heard instead the stern voice of a forerunner, coming from the direction of the distant temples and gradually drawing closer. “Who could be coming to worship so late at night?” he said, in puzzlement and fear. Exchanging glances, father and son held their breath as they peered toward the voice. Soon a young samurai outrider approached them, stomping roughly on the planks of the bridge.

Startled, they hid on the right side of the hall, but the samurai quickly discovered them. “Who are you?” he said. “His Excellency is coming. Get down quickly.” In a panic,

the owl of the three jewels 129

they climbed down from the veranda and prostrated them- selves on the ground. Soon they could hear the sound of many shoes, particularly the resounding echo of clogs, as a nobleman dressed in court robes and cap ascended to the hall, followed by four or five samurai, who sat to his right and left. The nobleman said to his attendants, “Why is so- and-so not here?” “He should be here soon,” one of them replied. Again footsteps could be heard, and another group,

l. 3 “clogs” (asagutsu): made of black-lacquered paulownia and lined with silk, worn by court nobles.

l. 4 “court robes and cap” (eboshi noshi): the everyday wear of nobles.

130 book three

Image has been suppressed

including a dignified samurai and a lay-priest with a shaved head, bowed and ascended to the hall. Addressing the samu- rai who had just arrived, the nobleman said, “Hitachi, why are you late?” The samurai replied, “Shirae and Kumagae were hard at work, saying that they would offer saké to Your Excellency, and so I wanted to prepare some fresh fish to go with it. This is why I have arrived late to serve Your Excel- lency.”12 When the fish had been arranged and presented, the nobleman said, “Mansaku, you pour.”13 A beautiful young samurai respectfully approached on his knees and raised the saké flask. As the cup was passed from person to person, the party appeared to grow lively. The nobleman

“ Soon a young samurai

outrider approached

them, stomping

roughly on the planks

of the bridge.”

the owl of the three jewels 131

Image has been suppressed

spoke again: “I have not heard Joha’s stories for a long time. Summon him.” The order seemed to be passed from man to man, until a large monk with a flat face and prominent features, wearing a priest’s robes, appeared from behind the prostrate Muzen and sat at the end of the row. The noble- man questioned him on various ancient matters, about which he replied in detail. Greatly impressed, the nobleman said, “Give him a reward.”

One of the samurai asked the monk a question: “I have heard that this mountain was established by a priest of high virtue, that there is no soil, rock, grass, or tree here that is not sacred. Yet there is poison in the waters of the Jewel River.14 A man who drinks this water will die. For this reason, I have heard, the Great Teacher composed a poem:

Forgetting, the traveler will surely scoop and drink—

the waters of the Jewel River deep in Takano.15

Why is it that, despite his high virtue, he did not dry up this poisonous stream? What is your analysis of this strange matter?” Smiling, the monk said, “The poem was selected for inclusion in the Fugashu.16 In the headnote, the author explained, ‘There being many poisonous insects upstream in the river called “Jewel River,” on the path to the Inner Sanctuary of Takano, I cautioned against drinking from the stream and later wrote this poem.’ And so it is just as you have recalled. Further, your question is reasonable because the Great Teacher, having mysterious, god-like powers, made the invisible gods open up roads where there had been none before; he cut through rocks more easily than digging in the soil, imprisoned great serpents, and subdued goblin-birds—when we consider that he accom- plished these great deeds, which are revered by all under heaven, we cannot accept the headnote as the truth. There are, of course, streams called Jewel River in various prov- inces,17 and all the poems composed about them praise

132 book three

the purity of their waters, leading us to conclude that this Jewel River, too, is not a poisonous stream; that the spirit of the poem is ‘Even if someone coming here to worship has forgotten the existence of such a famous river on this mountain, he will be delighted by the purity of the stream and scoop some water up to drink’; and that somebody concocted the headnote later, having heard a groundless report about poison. If we pursue our doubts further, we will see that the poem is not in the style of the early days of the present capital.18 Generally, in the old language of this country, ‘jeweled chaplet,’ ‘jeweled curtain,’ ‘jeweled robe,’ and the like were words of praise for a beautiful form or purity, so that pure water, too, was praised as ‘jewel water,’ ‘jewel well,’ and ‘jewel river.’19 Why would anyone have attached ‘jewel’ to the name of a poisonous stream? People who embrace Buddhism blindly and fail to grasp the spirit of poetry often make this kind of mistake. It is very percep- tive of you to question the meaning of this poem, especially as you are not a poet yourself,” he concluded, praising the man warmly. The nobleman and all the others lauded the reasonableness of this explanation.

From behind the hall came the cry buppan, buppan, sound- ing quite near. Raising his cup, the nobleman said, “That bird rarely calls. Tonight’s party is better than ever. Joha, how about it?” The monk bowed and said, “A link from me would surely sound fusty to your ears, my Lord. A traveler passing the night here has been reciting haikai in the current style. It would seem fresh to you, my Lord; please summon him and listen.” “Call him,” said the nobleman. A young samu- rai turned to Muzen and said, “You have been summoned. Approach.” Unsure whether he was dreaming or awake, Muzen crept forward, trembling with fear. The monk turned to him. “That verse you just composed—present it to my Lord,” he said. Muzen replied fearfully, “I do not remember what it

l. 24 “how about it”: the nobleman is asking Joha for a verse.

the owl of the three jewels 133

was. Please forgive me.” The monk pressed him: “You said ‘the secret mountain,’ did you not? His Excellency is wait- ing. Quickly.” More terrified than ever, Muzen said, “Who is the person you call His Excellency, holding a banquet by night, deep in this mountain? It is very mysterious.” The monk answered, “The man I refer to as His Excellency is the regent, Lord Hidetsugu. The others are Kimura Hitachi-no- suke, Sasabe Awaji, Shirae Bingo, Kumagae Daizen, Awano Moku, Hibino Shimotsuke, Yamaguchi Shoun, Marumo Fushin, the lay-monk Ryusai, Yamamoto Tonomo, Yamada Sanjuro, Fuwa Mansaku, and, addressing you, Joha, Bridge of the Dharma.20 It is due to a strange and fortunate bond that you are able to behold His Excellency. Now hurry and give him your verse.” It was so horrible that the hair on Muzen’s head would have stood on end, had there been any hair, and he felt as though his innards and his spirit alike were flying away into space. Trembling, he drew a clean sheet of paper from his pilgrim-bag, wrote on it with a fal- tering brush, and presented it. Tonomo took the paper and recited in a loud voice:

“The cry of the bird is mysterious, too—lush foliage on the

secret mountain.”

“Clever,” said the nobleman. “Someone provide a linking stanza.”21 Yamada Sanjuro moved forward and said, “I shall try.” Cocking his head in thought for a moment, he produced:

“Burning poppy seeds till dawn of a short night on the dais.22

How is this?” He showed it to Joha. “Well done,” the monk said, and presented it to his lord, who said, “Not bad.” Well pleased, he took a drink and passed the cup around.

Suddenly turning pale, the man called Awaji said, “The

134 book three

asura time is here already. The asuras say that they have come to escort you. Please rise.” Instantly, the faces of the entire party turned as red as though blood had been poured over them. In high spirits they cried, “Again tonight we shall take Ishida, Masuda, and the rest by surprise.”23 Hidetsugu turned to Kimura. “I have shown myself to these two nobod- ies,” he said. “Take them with us to the asura realm.” The senior retainers intervened and spoke with one voice: “Their life spans have not yet run out. Do not repeat your evil deeds,” but their words, and the figures of all the party, seemed to fade into the distant sky.

Muzen and his son fainted and lay motionless for a time, and then, as the eastern sky brightened, they were revived by the chill of the dew; but still terrified in the partial darkness, they fervently chanted the name of the Great Teacher,24 until, finally seeing the sun emerge, they rushed down the moun- tain, returned to the capital, and sought treatment with med- icines and acupuncture. One day as he was passing the Sanjo Bridge, Muzen thought of the Brutality Mound and felt his gaze being drawn toward the temple.25 “It was horrible, even in broad daylight,” he recounted to people in the capital. The story has been recorded here just as he told it.

l. 1 “asura” (J. ashura or shura): in Buddhism, former human beings reborn as demons in the asura realm, which among the Six Realms is the one reserved for those who have been arrogant and jealous or have indulged in dissipation and fighting. The cruel and dissolute Hidetsugu has been reborn in the asura realm, where he and the other inhabitants are con- demned to constant fighting.

the owl of the three jewels 135

N O T E S

1. Quoted in George Sansom, A History of Japan, vol. 2, 1334–1615 (Stan-

ford, Calif.: Stanford University Press, 1961), p. 366.

2. Translated by Oliver Statler, Japanese Pilgrimage (New York: Morrow,

1983), p. 28.

3. Fuji and Tsukuba are, by convention, the two principal peaks of east-

ern Japan. With the stability and prosperity of Japan and improved

transportation under the Tokugawa regime, domestic travel became

increasingly popular.

4. “clearing one-third of a mile on each side”: the main compound at

Koya is, in fact, about one-third of a mile west to east, and about 120 yards north to south.

5. Muzen is saying that their good fortune is the result of a bond from a

former life.

6. Mount Kasho is in the city of Numata, Gumma Prefecture; Mount Futara, now called Mount Nikko, is in Tochigi Prefecture (it is said that Kukai changed the name from Futara to Nikko during a visit in 820); Mount Daigo is in Fushimi Ward, southeastern Kyoto; and

Kawachi is the modern Osaka Prefecture. Shinaga apparently was the

name of a mountain in Taishi, Minami-kawachi County.

7. This verse, which is in Chinese, appears in volume 10 of Kobo Daishi, Shoryoshu (Collected Inspirations, 835), with the title “A Poem on Hear- ing [a] Bupposo at Night at Ryukoin on Mount Koya.” Paraphrased, the poem reads: “In the quiet forest, meditating alone in my hut at

dawn, I hear the call of a three-jewel bird singing bupposo, ‘Buddha, dharma, sa≈gha,’ the Three Jewels. In its voice the bird embodies the Three Jewels, and I, hearing it, have a mind that responds. In this

holy place, the animate voice and mind, the inanimate clouds and

water all have attained perfect enlightenment.” Ryukoin, one of the Koya sub-temples, stands just northeast of the main compound.

8. This poem, a waka, is by Fujiwara Mitsutoshi (1210–1276) and appears

in Fubokusho (The Japanese Collection, ca. 1310). Mount Matsuno-o (Matsuo) is in Ukyo Ward, west of the Matsuno-o Shrine, Kyoto.

9. The deities enshrined at the Matsuno-o Shrine are Oyamakui-no- kami and Ichikishimahime-no-mikoto. Enro (1130–1208), an emi- nent priest of the Tendai sect, became abbot of Saifukuji, a temple

that stood south of the Matsuno-o Shrine, in 1176. The Lotus Sutra (J.

Myohorengekyo) is the basic scripture of the Tendai sect and perhaps the most important text in East Asian Buddhism.

136 book three

10. Muzen echoes Kukai, who, in his poem, said that his mind responded to the bird’s call. Having heard the bird, Muzen is inspired to com-

pose a poem.

11. “secret mountain”: refers to Mount Koya, the center of the Shingon sect of esoteric Buddhism.

12. At this point, a reader familiar with Japanese history will realize that

the nobleman must be Toyotomi Hidetsugu. Kimura Hitachi-no-suke

Shigekore (d. 1595) was a retainer and confidant of Hidetsugu; Shirae

Bingo-no-kami (d. 1595) and Kumagae Daizen-no-suke Naoyuki (d.

1595) also were retainers of Hidetsugu. Hitachi-no-suke, Bingo-no-

kami, and Daizen-no-suke are honorary court titles. Unlike many of

Hidetsugu’s other retainers, who died with him at Koya, Kimura, Shi- rae, and Kumagae took their lives elsewhere; in this story, they have

rejoined their master at Mount Koya, but have arrived late. 13. Fuwa Mansaku (1579–1595), Hidetsugu’s page, was noted for his

beauty. He took his own life at Koya, before his master. 14. Conventional wisdom held at the time that the waters of the Tamagawa

(Jewel River) were poisonous.

15. This poem, a waka, is attributed to Kobo Daishi and appears in the Fugashu (Collection of Elegance, 1346), no. 1778. The headnote that precedes it reads (as Joha says): “There being many poisonous insects upstream in the river called ‘Jewel River,’ on the path to the Inner

Sanctuary of Takano, I cautioned against drinking from the stream

and later wrote this poem.” “Takano” is an alternative reading of the

characters for Koya. My translation of the poem follows Joha’s inter- pretation, which reflects Akinari’s own reading (Tandai shoshinroku [A Record of Daring and Prudence, 1808], sec. 46) and differs from earlier

readings in rejecting the headnote and interpreting the poem without

reference to it. For readers who accept the headnote as authentic, the

ambiguity of the first part of the poem has led to two distinct read-

ings: “Forgetting [that the river is poisonous], did the [dead] traveler

scoop and drink?” and “Even forgetting [that the river is poisonous],

should the traveler scoop and drink? [No, he should not.]”

16. The Fugashu is number seventeen of the twenty-one imperially com- missioned anthologies of poetry.

17. The six most famous Jewel Rivers (Tamagawa)—all of them utama-

kura—are in the prefectures of Kyoto, Shiga, Osaka, Wakayama (at

Koya), Tokyo, and Miyagi. 18. Kyoto became the capital in 794, when Kobo Daishi, the putative

author of the poem, was five years old, or about a generation before

the owl of the three jewels 137

the great Kokinshu poets Henjo (816–890?), Narihira (825–880), and Komachi (fl. ca. 833–857). The natural assumption is that Kobo Dai- shi would have composed poetry in the style of his own time.

19. “jeweled chaplet . . . jewel river”: tamakazura (the title of the “Jeweled

Chaplet” chapter of The Tale of Genji), tamadare, tamaginu, tamamizu,

tamanoi, and tamagawa.

20. Sasabe Awaji-no-kami served as Hidetsugu’s second when the dis-

graced regent committed suicide; Awano Moku-no-suke, Hibino Shimo-

tsuke-no-kami, Yamaguchi Shoun, Marumo Fushin, Ryusai, Yamamoto Tonomo-no-suke, and Yamada Sanjuro were retainers of Hidetsugu who committed suicide just before or after their master. Yamamoto and

Yamada were young pages. Awaji-no-kami, Moku-no-suke, Shimotsuke-

no-kami, and Tonomo-no-suke are honorary court titles.

21. “linking stanza” (tsukeku): in renga (linked-verse), a tsukeku is

a stanza that links with the preceding stanza. Renga poets had to

observe strict rules.

22. This stanza, presumably composed by Akinari, evokes the image

of a goma ritual, common in Shingon Buddhism, in which a priest

chants spells and incantations while burning poppy seeds and slips of

wood on a dais, to symbolize the flames of wisdom extinguishing bad

karma. Reference to the goma ritual echoes “secret mountain” (Mount

Koya) in the first stanza, in that both allude to esoteric Buddhism. In other ways, too, the linking stanza conforms to the rules of renga:

“dais”: the gomadan in the Goma Hall (Gomado), one of the build- ings in the Inner Sanctuary at Koya.

“till dawn”: recalls the cry of the bupposo at dawn in the first stanza. “short night”: like “lush foliage,” in the first stanza, alludes to

summer.

23. Ishida Mitsunari (1560–1600) and Masuda Nagamori (1545–1615),

close retainers of Toyotomi Hideyoshi, were said to have conspired to

turn Hideyoshi against Hidetsugu in the first place and were among

those who signed the order for Hidetsugu’s suicide.

24. That is, they chanted Namu Daishi Henjo Kongo. 25. On the grounds of the Buddhist temple Zuisenji, southeast of the

bridge spanning the Takase River at Sanjo, in Kyoto, stands the Hidetsugu Brutality Mound (Hidetsugu Akugyakuzuka), in which

are buried Hidetsugu’s head and the remains of his wife, concu-

bines, and children—some thirty people in all—who were executed

on Hideyoshi’s orders.

138 book three

t itle

The title, “Kibitsu no kama,” refers to the rice-cauldron ora- cle at the Kibitsu Shrine, in Okayama Prefecture.

characters

All the characters in “The Kibitsu Cauldron” are fictional. The protagonists are Shotaro, a farmer; his wife, Isora, the daughter of a Shinto priest; his lover, Sode, a prostitute; and Hikoroku, Sode’s cousin.

places

“The Kibitsu Cauldron” begins in the Kibi region, in the village of Niise, now called Niwase, Okayama Prefecture. Kibi consisted of the provinces of Bizen, Bitchu, Mima- saka, and Bingo, corresponding to Okayama Prefecture and part of Hiroshima Prefecture. The nearby Kibitsu Shrine, a major Shinto shrine in western Japan, is located

BOOK THREE

THE KIBITSU CAULDRON

in the town of Magane, Okayama Prefecture. It enshrines Okibitsuhiko-no-mikoto, son of Emperor Korei (legendary dates, 290–215 B.C.E.).

The rest of the story takes place in the village of Arai, now part of the city of Takasago, Hyogo Prefecture, about fifty miles east of Niise/Niwase on the road to the capital.

t ime

Autumn, around 1500, or three generations from 1441 (the year of the Kakitsu Incident).

background

The Cauldron Purification ritual (Mikamabarai) is held in a small building on the grounds of the Kibitsu Shrine. Inside, a large iron rice cauldron rests on a clay hearth. When the water boils, fueled by burning pine needles, the cauldron makes a rumbling sound, the volume of which is taken to indicate good or bad fortune.

In “The Kibutsu Cauldron,” Isora is depicted as the ideal wife of the time, as prescribed in such books as Onna daigaku (The Great Learning for Women, 1716), attributed to Kaibara Ekiken (1630–1714): she rises early, retires late, faithfully serves her husband and parents-in-law, and secretly empa- thizes with her husband’s concubine. The most dramatic example in Japanese literature of a wife’s concern for her husband’s lover is in Chikamatsu Monzaemon’s play Shinju Ten no Amijima (Love Suicides at Amijima, 1720), in which the wife overcomes her jealousy and secretly corresponds with the mistress. The tradition of the good wife who supports an unfaithful husband goes back at least as far as section 23 of Ise monogatari (Tales of Ise, ca. 947). The husband of the lady in Ise is so moved by her loyalty that he stops visiting the

140 book three

other woman.1 Shotaro pretends to be moved by his wife’s devotion, but soon proves to be unworthy of her.

aff init ies

There is a long history of tales similar to “The Kibitsu Caul- dron” in China and Japan. Commentators have identified a number of sources on which Akinari drew in writing this story, including, especially, Qu You’s “Mudan deng ji” (Peony Lantern), in Jiandeng xinhua (New Tales After Trimming the Lamp, 1378), and its Japanese adaptation, Asai Ryoi’s “Botan no toro” (The Peony Lantern), in Otogiboko (Talisman Dolls, 1666);2 “Onna no ichinen kite otto no mi o hikisoite torite kaeru koto” (A Woman’s Vindictive Spirit Comes, Draws near Her Husband, and Takes Him Away with Her), in Zen- aku mukui hanashi (Stories of Karmic Retribution, Good and Evil, ca. 1700?), which combines tales 27:20 and 24:20 of the late-Heian setsuwa collection Konjaku monogatari shu (Tales of Times Now Past, ca. 1120); and Hayashi Razan’s Honcho jinja ko (Studies of Japanese Shrines). Some of the details in the opening paragraph are derived from book 8 of Xie Zhao- zhe’s Wuzazu (Five Miscellanies, 1618).

A jealous wife is intrmerits.” Alas! Whose words are these? Even if the harm she does is mild, she interferes with making a living and ruins everything, and the neighbors’ censure is hard to escape; and when the harm is severe, she loses her family, brings down the realm, and everywhere becomes a laughingstock. There is no telling how many people since ancient times have suffered this poison. The kind who, after death, vents her wrath by turning into a serpent or a vio-

the kib itsu cauldron 141

Image has been suppressed

lent thunderbolt will never rest, though her flesh be pickled in salt. But such cases are rare. The husband who behaves uprightly and instructs his wife carefully can surely escape this affliction; and yet with some trivial thing, he will incite her perverse nature and bring grief upon himself. It is said that “what controls a bird is the human will; what controls a wife is her husband’s manliness.” Truly, this is so.

In the province of Kibi, county of Kaya, village of Niise lived a man named Izawa Shodayu. His grandfather served the Akamatsu clan in Harima, but left their mansion at the time of the Kakitsu Incident and came here, where the three generations down to Shodayu prospered, plowing in the spring and harvesting in the fall.3 Shodayu’s only son, Sho- taro, disliked farming and disobeyed his father’s precepts, indulging in saké and sensual pleasure. Lamenting this, his parents held secret conversations: “If we could only find a pretty girl from a good family for him to marry, he would behave himself.” They searched tirelessly throughout the province, until, happily, a matchmaker said, “The daughter of Kasada Miki, the head priest at Kibitsu, has an elegant, refined nature and is devoted to her parents; moreover, she composes poetry and plays the koto masterfully. Since the family is a good one, descended from Kibi no Kamowake, this would be a splendid match for your family. I would hope that a marriage could be arranged. What do you think?” Shodayu was delighted: “You have brought wonderful news. This could be the means to a thousand years of good for- tune for my family; but the Kasadas are a noble house in this province, while we are nameless peasants. We cannot compare in social standing; I fear that they would not accept a proposal from us.” The old matchmaker smiled: “You are

l. 1 “pickled in salt”: one form of punishment in ancient China was to mince and pickle a criminal’s flesh.

l. 23 Kibi no Kamowake: Kibi Kamowake-no-mikoto, the younger half brother of Okibitsuhiko-no-mikoto, the deity enshrined at Kibitsu.

142 book three

far too modest. I will be congratulating you soon, without a doubt.” He went to speak with Kasada, who was delighted as well; and when Kasada talked with his wife, she said, in high spirits, “Our daughter is already seventeen, and my heart has had no rest, night or day, wishing that we might find a good man for her to marry. Choose a date quickly, and exchange the betrothal gifts.” Since she was so enthusiastic, they soon agreed to the engagement and reported to Izawa. The fami- lies exchanged generous gifts, chose a propitious day, and prepared for the wedding ceremony.

Further, in order to pray to the god for happiness, Kasada assembled shrine maidens and priests to make an offering of hot water. It has long been the custom for worshippers at the Kibitsu Shrine to make abundant offerings, present hot water to the god, and seek a divination of good or bad for- tune. When the maidens complete their ritual prayers and the water comes to a boil, the cauldron will, if the prospects are good, produce a sound like the lowing of cattle. If the prospects are bad, the cauldron will make no sound. This is called the Kibitsu Cauldron Purification. In the matter concerning the Kasada family, however, there was no sound, not even the feeble chirping of insects in the autumn grass. Could it be that the god would not accept their prayers? This awakened misgivings in Kasada, who consulted his wife about the oracle. She had no doubts whatever: “It is because the priests’ bodies were impure that the cauldron made no sound. Do they not say that, once betrothal gifts have been exchanged, the red cord is tied and the engagement must not be broken, even if the families are enemies or come from different lands? And especially in the case of the Izawas—I hear that they are a strict family, descended from men who knew one end of a bow from the other; surely they would

l. 28 “red cord . . . broken”: this sentiment derives from a Chinese tale about an old man who possessed a red cord that he would use to bind the legs of a man and a woman. Once bound, they would inevitably marry.

the kib itsu cauldron 143

not accept a refusal from us now. And our daughter is count- ing the days, having somehow learned that her fiancé is very good looking. There is no telling what she might do if she heard this inauspicious talk. If it came to that, our regrets would be futile.” Her use of every argument to remonstrate with her husband no doubt resulted from her disposition as a woman. Kasada did not pursue his doubts any further, because he favored the match, and he went along with his wife. Having completed their preparations, the two families assembled and congratulated the bride and groom, singing of the crane’s one thousand years, the tortoise’s ten thousand.

After Isora, Kasada’s daughter, went to live with the Iza- was, she served them with all her heart, rising early, retiring late, always ready to help her parents-in-law, and accommo- dating to her husband’s nature, so that the older Izawas were overjoyed at her admirable devotion and fidelity. Shotaro, too, was moved by her sincerity, and their life as husband and wife was happy. And yet, there was no getting around his willful, dissolute nature. At some point, he grew close to a woman of pleasure named Sode, at Tomonotsu;4 finally, he redeemed her contract and installed her in a house at a nearby village, where he would spend days at a time with- out returning home. Resentful of this, Isora remonstrated with him, sometimes using her in-laws’ anger as an excuse, sometimes lamenting her husband’s fickleness; but he paid no attention and stayed away for more than a month. Sho- dayu, unable to stand idly by in the face of Isora’s devotion,

l. 4 “If it came to that”: the implication seems to be “if she lost her mind” or, even, “if she took her own life.”

l. 11 “the crane’s one thousand years, the tortoise’s ten thousand”: prover- bially, cranes live for one thousand years; tortoises, for ten thousand. The families use these conventional phrases to wish for a long, happy marriage.

l. 20 “woman of pleasure” (asobimono or ukareme): an indentured prostitute, whose contract could be redeemed by a patron who wanted to take her as a wife or mistress.

144 book three

reprimanded Shotaro and confined him in a room. This sad- dened Isora, who behaved more steadfastly than ever, wait- ing on her husband faithfully morning and night and send- ing things secretly to Sode.

One day, when his father was away from home, Shotaro appealed to Isora, saying, “When I see how truly faithful you are, I feel nothing but remorse for my misdeeds. I shall send that woman back to her home village and assuage Father’s anger. She is from the Inami Plain, in Harima. It made me sad to see her in that wretched position, without parents, and I took pity on her. If I abandon her, she will surely go back to entertaining men at some port again. I have heard that people are more compassionate in the capital, and so I want to take her there and help her find service with a man of substance, even if it means that she continues in the same wretched sta- tus. She must be in terrible straits now, with me shut up like this. Who will see to her expenses on the road and her cloth- ing? Could you manage these things and help her?” Isora responded joyfully to his courteously phrased entreaties. “Put your mind at rest,” she said. Secretly exchanging her own clothing and accessories for cash and using some pretense to plead for money from her mother, she gave everything to Shotaro. Once he had the money, he slipped out of the house and fled with Sode toward the capital. Isora, having been so cruelly deceived, now was overwhelmed by resentment and distress and took to her bed, seriously ill. The Izawas and Kasadas hated him and pitied her, and fervently hoped that medical treatment would effect her recovery; but even por- ridge was more than she could swallow, and she weakened day by day, until finally there was no hope.

In Harima Province, district of Inami, village of Arai, there was a man called Hikoroku. Because he was her cousin, Sode and Shotaro called on him first and stopped to rest their feet for a while. Hikoroku said to Shotaro, “Even in the capital, not everyone is trustworthy. Stay here. We will share our rice and find a way to make a living together.”

the kib itsu cauldron 145

Relieved to hear these welcome words, Shotaro decided that he and Sode would live here. Hikoroku, delighted to have new companions, rented the run-down house adjoin- ing his for them to occupy. Sode, however, seemed to come down with a cold; she began to be vaguely unwell and then appeared to have lost her mind, as though possessed by some malign spirit. In his distress that this disaster had befallen them, and only a few days after their arrival, Sho- taro forgot even to eat as he looked after her. Sode only wailed, apparently feeling an unbearable pressure on her chest,5 and then, whenever the fever subsided, she would seem the same as always. Could it be an angry spirit? Had something happened to her whom he had abandoned in his village? Shotaro’s heart ached. Hikoroku encouraged him: “How could that be? I have seen many cases of people suffering from an ague. When the fever goes down a little, you will forget all about it, as though it had been a dream.” His easy manner was reassuring. Their care, however, had not the slightest effect, and on the seventh day Sode passed away. Looking up at the sky and stamping his feet on the ground, Shotaro wailed with grief like one insane, saying that he wanted to accompany her in death. Hikoroku tried to comfort him. “Nothing more can be done,” he said, and finally they turned her into smoke on a remote field. Gather- ing the bones, they constructed a grave, erected memorial tablets, and, summoning a priest, prayed earnestly for her enlightenment in the next life.

Now Shotaro, lying prostrate, longed for the Land of the Dead, but he could not employ the Way of Calling Back the Spirit;6 looking up, he thought of his home, but it seemed even more distant than the Underworld: there was no ferry before him, and he had lost the road that would take him back; all day he lay in bed, and each evening he visited the grave, where the grass had already grown thick and the voices of the insects were vaguely forlorn. As he was telling himself that the loneliness of autumn was for him alone,7

146 book three

he saw the same grief elsewhere under the clouds in the sky,8 for there was a new grave near this one and a sorrowful woman making an offering of flowers and water. “How sad for a young woman like you to be wandering on this deso- late field,” he said. She turned to look at him and said, “I come every evening, but you are always here before me. You must have parted from someone very dear to you. It makes me sad to think how you must feel.” Tears were streaming down her cheeks. Shotaro said, “Yes, ten days ago I lost my beloved wife, and I feel helpless and alone. Coming here is my only consolation. I suppose it is the same for you.” The woman said, “This is my master’s grave; we buried him here some days ago. I bring incense and flowers in place of my widowed mistress, who is so heartbroken that she has taken seriously ill.” Shotaro said, “It is only natural that she should fall ill. Who was the deceased, and where do you live?” The woman said, “My master was from a prominent family in this province, but he lost his holdings because of slander and came to live miserably on the edge of this field. My mistress is known as a great beauty, even in neighbor- ing provinces; it was because of her that my master lost his house and land.”9 His heart stirred by this account, Shotaro said, “Then, is your mistress’s lonely dwelling close by? Per- haps I should visit her, so that we can comfort each other by expressing the sadness we share. Please take me with you.” “The house is a little way off the road by which you came. She has no one to turn to; please visit her often. She must be waiting anxiously.”10 With this, she stood and led the way.

Walking about 250 yards, they came to a little path. Another 100 yards brought them to a small, thatched house in a gloomy wood. Light from the moon, past its first quarter, streamed brightly through a dreary bamboo gate, illuminat- ing a meager, neglected garden.11 The feeble light of a candle shone desolately through a paper window. “Please wait here,” she said, and went inside. Standing next to a moss-covered

the kib itsu cauldron 147

well, he peered into the house. Through the narrow space where a sliding door had been left open, he saw the glow of elegant, black-lacquered shelves as the flame wavered in a draft, exciting his curiosity. The woman came out: “When I told my mistress of your visit, she said, ‘Please come in; I will speak with you from behind a screen,’ and she has crept to the edge.12 Please come inside.” She led him in through the garden. The door to a twelve-foot-wide reception room was open just enough for a person to enter; inside stood a low folding screen, from which protruded the edge of some old bedding; apparently, the lady of the house lay there. Fac- ing the screen, Shotaro said, “I have heard that you not only

148 book three

Image has been suppressed

suffered a bereavement, but also have fallen ill—I, too, have lost my precious wife, and so, thinking that we might call on each other in our mutual grief, I have presumed to visit you.” The lady pushed aside the folding screen a little. “So we meet again, after all this time,” she said. “Let me show how I repay your cruelty.” Astonished, he looked closely. It was Isora, whom he had left behind in his home village. Her face was ghastly pale, the bleary, tired eyes appalling, and a pale, wasted hand pointed horribly this way. Crying out, he collapsed and lost consciousness.

He came to after a time. Opening his eyes just a little, he saw that what had appeared to be a house was in fact

“ Let me show how I

repay your cruelty.”

the kib itsu cauldron 149

Image has been suppressed

a Samadhi Hall in the desolate field, and only a statue of the Buddha stood inside, darkened with age. Following the barks of a dog coming from the faraway village, he ran back home and told Hikoroku what had happened. “You were probably tricked by a fox,” said Hikoroku. “A deceiving spirit will possess you when you feel low. A grief-stricken weakling like you needs to pray to the gods and buddhas and calm your heart. There is a venerable yin–yang master in the village of Toda. Have him purify you and ask him for some talismans.” Leading Shotaro to the yin–yang master, he explained the situation in detail, from the beginning, and requested a divination. The master considered his divi- nation and said, “Misfortune is already pressing close upon you. This is no easy matter. The spirit first took a woman’s life, and yet its resentment is not dissipated. Your life, too, could end tonight or tomorrow morning. Because seven days have passed since the spirit left this world, you must shut yourself inside for forty-two more days and exercise the greatest restraint on your behavior during that period. If you obey my warning, you just might escape death; if you go astray, for even a moment, you will not escape.” After giving him this firm warning, the master took up a brush, wrote characters in the seal-style on Shotaro’s back and limbs, and gave him a number of paper talismans written in cinnabar. “Affix these charms to every door and pray to the gods and buddhas,” he instructed. “Make no mistake,

150 book three

l. 1 Samadhi Hall (Sanmaido): samadhi is a Sanskrit word meaning “concen- tration”—the calm state in which all desires and distractions are absent and the mind is prepared for enlightenment. A Samadhi Hall is a place where one tries to achieve samadhi or, as here, a cemetery chapel where visitors pray for the enlightenment of the dead.

l. 8 “yin–yang master”: in the Edo period, yin–yang masters practiced divina- tion using the I jing (The Book of Changes) and physiognomy, performed Shinto purifications, and recited Buddhist incantations for the protec- tion of their clients.

l. 18 “forty-two more days”: in Buddhism, the spirit of the dead was believed to wander in this realm for forty-nine days.

lest you lose your life.” Feeling both fearful and jubilant, Shotaro returned to his house, where he affixed the cinna- bar charms to the doors and windows and shut himself in, exercising the greatest restraint.

That night, during the third watch, he heard a horrid voice. “Oh! I loathe him! Sacred charms have been put up here,” it muttered. That was all. Terrified, Shotaro bewailed the length of the night. At dawn, reviving, he immediately pounded on the wall that separated his house from Hikoroku’s and recounted the events of the night before. Finally grasping the uncanny accuracy of the yin–yang master’s words, Hikoroku, too, stayed up the following night and waited for the third watch. The wind in the pines sounded fierce enough to topple things over, and then the rain began to fall. As this extraor- dinary night progressed, the two men called to each other, back and forth through the wall, until the fourth watch came. Then a crimson light pierced the window-paper of Shotaro’s house. “Oh! I loathe him! They have been affixed here, too!” The voice was even more horrible so late at night; the hair on Shotaro’s head and body stood on end, and he fainted away. At daybreak, he talked about the night before; at nightfall, he longed for daybreak: the days and weeks seemed to pass more slowly than a thousand years. Every night, the spirit circled the house or screamed from the ridgepole, its angry voice more horrible each night than the night before.

This continued until the forty-second night. It would all be over in one more night, and Shotaro exercised special restraint. At last, the sky of the fifth watch brightened. Feel- ing as though he had awakened from a long dream, Shotaro immediately called to Hikoroku, who came to the wall and asked, “How are you?” “My strict confinement is over now,” Shotaro said. “I have not seen your face for a long time. I

the kib itsu cauldron 151

l. 5 “third watch”: the time between sunset and sunrise was divided into five equal watches of about two hours each. The third watch corresponded roughly to the period from midnight to 2:00 A.M.

long to see you and to comfort my heart by talking with you about the pain and fear of these past days. Get up. I shall step outside.” Hikoroku, being a rash and thoughtless man, replied, “What could happen now? Come over here.” He had not yet opened the door halfway when a scream pierced his ears from the eaves next door, and he fell back on his rump. Thinking that something must have happened to Shotaro, he picked up an ax and went out into the main street, where he found that the night, which they thought had ended, was still dark; the moon cast a dim light from high in the sky, the wind was cold, and Shotaro’s door stood open, but he was nowhere to be seen. Maybe he had fled back inside? Hikoroku ran in to see, but it was not the sort of residence that offered any place to hide. Was he lying in the street? Hikoroku searched, but found nothing. What could have happened to him? he thought, both puzzled and afraid. Hold- ing up a torch, he looked all around, until, next to the open door, he saw fresh blood dribbling from the wall onto the ground. And yet neither corpse nor bones were to be seen. In the moonlight, he glimpsed something at the edge of the eaves. When he held up the torch to look, he found a man’s topknot hanging there, and nothing else. The pity and hor- ror were more than can be expressed with brush and paper. When dawn came, he searched the nearby fields and hills, but he could find no trace of Shotaro.

He reported this to the Izawa family, who tearfully in- formed Kasada. Thus it was said, as people passed the story down, that the accuracy of the yin–yang master’s divination, and the ultimate rightness of the cauldron’s unfavorable ora- cle, were truly precious and sacred.

N O T E S

1. Helen Craig McCullough, trans., Tales of Ise: Lyrical Episodes from

Tenth-Century Japan (Stanford, Calif.: Stanford University Press,

1968), pp. 87–89.

152 book three

2. Asai Ryoi, The Peony Lantern: “Botan no toro” from Otogi boko (1666), trans. Maryellen Toman Mori, An Episodic Festschrift for Howard

Hibbett, vol. 3 (Hollywood, Calif.: Highmoonoon, 2000).

3. The Akamatsu clan governed Harima Province, now part of Hyogo Prefecture, from the mid-fourteenth century until 1441, the first year

of Kakitsu, when Akamatsu Mitsutsuke assassinated the shogun and

was, in turn, forced to commit suicide, in what is known as the Ka-

kitsu Incident. The family later regained power in Harima and gov-

erned there until 1521.

4. The port of Tomonotsu, now part of the city of Fukuyama, Hiroshima

Prefecture, is about twenty miles west of Niise/Niwase.

5. “Sode only wailed . . . chest”: this wording is almost identical to

that in the “Aoi” (Heartvine) chapter of The Tale of Genji, in which

Genji’s wife is possessed by the spirit of the Rokujo lady (Mura- saki Shikibu, The Tale of Genji, trans. Edward G. Seidensticker [New

York: Knopf, 1976], p. 165). Sode’s plight also recalls an incident

in the “Yugao” (Evening Faces) chapter of Genji, in which one of Genji’s lovers dies, apparently in the grasp of a possessing spirit

(pp. 71–72).

6. The Way of Calling Back the Spirit was a ritual practiced in ancient

China: when a person died, someone would ascend to the roof and

hold the deceased’s clothing toward the north while calling his or her

name three times.

7. An allusion to a poem by Oe no Chisato:

Looking at the moon I am saddened by a thousand things—

though the autumn is not for me alone. (Kokinshu, no. 193)

8. “clouds in the sky” (amakumo no): a pillow-word, here modifying

“elsewhere” (yoso).

9. The reasons are unclear, but presumably have to do with the slander

mentioned in the previous sentence.

10. Most commentators interpret this sentence (machiwabitamawan

mono o) as something the woman says to herself: “She will be waiting

for me, [I had better go].” Uzuki Hiroshi agrees, but suggests that the

words are a double entendre, directed at Shotaro as well: “She will be waiting for you” (Ugetsu monogatari hyoshaku, Nihon koten hyoshaku zenchushaku sosho [Tokyo: Kadokawa, 1969], p. 431).

11. This description echoes that of the residence of the lady of the “eve-

ning faces,” in the “Evening Faces” chapter of The Tale of Genji (Mura-

saki Shikibu, Tale of Genji, pp. 68–69).

the kib itsu cauldron 153

12. It was customary for upper-class women to receive men from behind

a screen. It is unclear whether the lady has crept to the edge of her

bedding, the edge of the room, or the edge of the veranda—or all

three. Uzuki opts for “the edge of the room, in other words, near

the veranda” (Ugetsu monogatari hyoshaku, p. 436). In what follows, it is also unclear where the screen is and where Shotaro is when he addresses the lady behind the screen. The woodblock illustration

accompanying this scene in the edition of 1776 appears to have Sho- taro and the maid kneeling in the garden and the lady kneeling or sitting on her bedding, just inside the open door, as she pushes the

folding screen aside.

154 book three

t itle

The title, “Jasei no in,” refers to a monstrous serpent’s lust for a handsome youth, Toyoo.

characters

As in “The Kibitsu Cauldron,” all the characters in “A Ser- pent’s Lust” are fictional. The principal figures are Toyoo, the studious son of a fisherman, and Manago, the serpent- woman who seduces him.

places

“A Serpent’s Lust” begins at Cape Miwa, now part of the city of Shingu, Wakayama Prefecture (formerly, Kii Province), on the southeastern shore of the Kii Peninsula. The story then moves to several other sites.

BOOK FOUR

A SERPENT’S LUST

Tsubaichi (Tsuba Market), now part of Miwa-cho, in the city of Sakurai, Nara Prefecture (formerly, Yamato Prov- ince), was a market town at the foot of Mount Miwa on the approach to Hasedera, the celebrated Buddhist temple at Hatsuse (now Hase, in Sakurai).

Yoshino is a region in Nara Prefecture, south of Sakurai, celebrated since ancient times for its beautiful mountain scenery and vast groves of blossoming cherry trees. Mount Mifune and the Natsumi River (an alternative name for part of the Yoshino River) are among the famous sights. Yoshino is also mentioned in “The Owl of the Three Jewels.”

The Buddhist temple Dojoji stands about one mile from Komatsubara, now part of the city of Gobo, on the south- western coast of the Kii Peninsula, through which pilgrims passed on their way to and from the temple.

t ime

Late autumn of one year, spring of the following year, and later in the same year, apparently. Although the date of “A Serpent’s Lust” is unclear, there are hints that it takes place during the Heian period (794–1185).

background

Shingu is home to the Kumano Gongen Hayatama Shrine, which is about three miles north of Cape Miwa and one of the “Three Mountains of Kumano”: the Shinto shrines of Hongu, Shingu, and Kumano Nachi, which together consti- tuted a popular destination for pilgrims in the Heian period. The retired emperor Go-Shirakawa—a younger brother of Sutoku, one of the protagonists in “Shiramine”—is said to have made the pilgrimage, a round trip requiring nearly a month, as often as thirty-four times.

156 book four

The Buddhist temple at Hatsuse, now called Hasedera, is dedicated to the bodhisattva Avalokitesvara (J. Kanzeon or Kannon) and was another popular destination for aris- tocratic pilgrims. It appears frequently in Heian literature. In a well-known example in The Tale of Genji, Tamakazura and her party undertake a pilgrimage to Hatsuse, having been told that it is “known even in China as the Japanese temple among them all that gets things done.” They stay at Tsubaichi, where by chance they are reunited with Ukon.1

Another association makes Tsubaichi especially appro- priate to “A Serpent’s Lust.” The deity of Mount Miwa “was notorious in early literature for his liking for beautiful women” and “was regarded as a snake—or at least as fre- quently assuming the form of a snake. Today, Mount Miwa is the center of a flourishing religious cult; the mountain, itself considered sacred, is infested with snakes, who consume the offerings left by the pious, and stories of supernatural mar- riage are grouped together by Japanese scholars as ‘Mount Miwa type’ tales.”2

The Buddhist temple Dojoji is famous for its association with the legend of the young monk Anchin, from Kurama, and Kiyohime, the daughter of the steward of Masago in the village of Shiba. According to the legend, Kiyohime fell in love with the handsome Anchin when he spent the night at her father’s house during a pilgrimage to Kumano. When he failed to return to her, as he had promised, her jealous anger transformed her into a serpent and she pursued him to Dojoji, where he had taken refuge inside the temple bell. She coiled herself around the bell and roasted him to death with the heat of her passion.

aff init ies

Akinari based “A Serpent’s Lust” principally on “Bai Niangzi yong zhen leifengda” (Eternal Prisoner Under the

a serpent ’ s lust 157

Thunder Peak Pagoda), a Ming vernacular tale in the col- lection Jingshi tongyan (Warning Words to Penetrate the Age, 1625), edited by Feng Menglong, and several other Chinese stories.3 It also shows many signs of Akinari’s intimate knowledge of the Man’yoshu, The Tale of Genji, and other Japanese classics.

Much of the description of the temple in Yoshino, for example, derives from two passages in the “Wakamurasaki” (Lavender) chapter of The Tale of Genji:

The sun rose high in the sky. Stepping outside, he looked

out from the high vantage point and could clearly see monks’

residences here and there below.4

The sky at dawn was very thick with haze, and mountain

birds were chirping everywhere. The blossoms of trees and

grasses whose names he did not know scattered in a profusion

of color.5

The story of Kiyohime and Anchin is familiar in many versions, including the no play Dojoji and kabuki plays.

other observat ions

Despite their superficial resemblances, the angry, vengeful spirit of Isora, in “The Kibitsu Cauldron,” and the serpent- woman Manago, in “A Serpent’s Lust,” are essentially differ- ent. The former is the spirit of a good woman who has been wronged by her husband. While Isora is still alive, her spirit appears to act without her knowledge, like the spirit of the Rokujo lady in The Tale of Genji. After Isora dies, her spirit, now free of human morality, takes revenge on Shotaro for his betrayal. The latter, though, is not a woman, but a mon- strous serpent that has temporarily assumed human form. Manago is motivated by simple lust for a young man.

158 book four

The serpent-woman in this story is repeatedly associated with images of water. Manago first appears during a rain- storm that has blown in from the southeast—tatsumi, the direction of the dragon (east-southeast) and the serpent (south-southeast)—and she first meets Toyoo in the rain, on a seashore. Rain falls at night when she and Toyoo are reunited near the Hatsuse River. She is seated next to the falls at Miyataki, on the Natsumi River, when a Shinto priest recognizes her as a serpent. As she dives into the river, water boils up into the sky and a heavy rain begins to fall. Later, a Buddhist monk mixes orpiment with water in order to com- bat the serpent, and when the serpent repels him, Tomiko’s family unsuccessfully tries to revive him with water.

“A Serpent’s Lust” has survived in the twentieth-century popular imagination. It was adapted to the silent screen in 1921 in Jasei no in, directed by Thomas Kurihara, with a screenplay by Tanizaki Jun’ichiro. A partial translation of the screenplay appears in Joanne R. Bernardi’s Writing in Light.6 More famously, “A Serpent’s Lust,” along with “The Reed-Choked House,” was the basis for Mizoguchi Kenji’s film Ugetsu monogatari (1953). This was followed, in 1958, by Hakujaden (Legend of the White Snake), released in the West in 1961 as Panda and the Magic Serpent. It was the first full- length, color, animated film made in Japan and was based on “Eternal Prisoner Under the Thunder Peak Pagoda,” the Chinese story that inspired “A Serpent’s Lust.”

nce—what era w Oya no Takesuke, of Cape Miwa in the province of Kii.7 Enjoying the luck of the sea, he employed many

fishermen, caught fish of every kind and size, and lived with his family in wealth. He had two sons and a daughter. Taro, the eldest, had an unaffected, honest nature and managed

a serpent ’ s lust 159

O Image has been suppressed

the family business well. The second child, the daughter, had been welcomed as a bride by a man of Yamato and gone to live with him.8 Then there was the third child, Toyoo. A gentle boy, he favored the courtly, refined ways of the capi- tal and had no heart for making a living. Distressed by this, his father deliberated: if he left part of the family fortune to Toyoo, it would soon find its way into the hands of others. Or he could make Toyoo the heir of another family; but the bad news, which surely would come sooner or later, would be too painful. No, he would simply rear Toyoo as the boy wished, eventually to become a scholar or a monk, and let him be Taro’s dependent for the rest of his life. Having reached this conclusion, he did not go out of his way to discipline his younger son.

Toyoo traveled back and forth to study with Abe no Yumi- maro, a priest at Shingu. One day late in the Ninth Month, the sea was remarkably calm, with no trace of wind or wave, when suddenly clouds appeared from the southeast and a gentle rain began to fall. Borrowing an umbrella at his men- tor’s house, Toyoo started toward home, but just as the Asuka Shrine came into distant view, the rain fell harder, and so he stopped at a fisherman’s hut that happened to be nearby. The old man of the house scrambled out to meet him: “Well, well, the master’s younger son. I am honored that you have come to such a shabby place. Here, please sit on this.” He brushed the filth off a round wicker cushion and presented it. “I shall stay for only a moment,” Toyoo said. “Anything will do. Please do not go to any trouble.” He settled down to rest. A lovely voice came from outside, saying, “Please be kind enough to let me rest under your eaves.” Curious, Toyoo turned to look and saw a woman of about twenty, resplendently beautiful in face, figure, and coiffure, wearing a kimono printed in fine colors with the distant-mountain pattern, and accompa-

l. 8 “heir of another family”: he could marry Toyoo into another family, whose adopted son and heir he would become.

160 book four

nied by a lovely servant girl of fourteen or fifteen to whom she had entrusted a package of some kind. Drenched to the skin, she appeared to be at her wits’ end, but her face flushed with embarrassment when she saw Toyoo. His heart leaped at her elegance, and he thought, “If such a noble beauty lived around here, I would surely have heard of her before this. No doubt she is from the capital, here for a look at the sea on her return from a pilgrimage to the Three Mountains. But how careless of her not to have a male attendant.” Moving back a little, he said, “Do come in. The rain will soon end.” The woman said, “Just for a moment, then; please excuse me.” The hut was small, and when she sat directly before him, he saw that her beauty at close range was scarcely that of a person of this world. His heart soaring, he said to her, “You appear to be of noble family. Have you been on a pilgrimage to the Three Mountains? Or perhaps you have gone to the hot springs at Yunomine? What could there be for you to see on this desolate strand? Someone wrote of this place in ancient times:

How distressing this sudden fall of rain—

and there is no shelter at Sano Crossing of Cape Miwa.9

Truly, the verse expresses the mood of today. This is a shabby house, but my father looks out for the man here. Please relax and wait for the rain to clear. And where are you lodging on your travels? It would be impertinent for me to escort you there, but please take this umbrella when you go.” The woman said, “Your words cheer me, and I am most grate- ful. My clothing will surely dry in the warmth of your kind- ness. I do not come from the capital but have been living near here for many years. Thinking that today would be fair, I made a pilgrimage to Nachi,10 but frightened by the sud- den rain, I came bursting into this house, not knowing that you had already taken shelter here. I have not far to go; I shall start now, during this lull in the rain.” “Do take the

a serpent ’ s lust 161

umbrella, please,” Toyoo urged. “I will come for it sometime later. The rain shows no sign of letting up. Where is your home? I shall send someone for the umbrella.” She replied, “Ask at Shingu for the house of Agata no Manago. Soon the sun will set. I shall be on my way, then, shielded by your kindness.” She took the umbrella and left. He watched her go and then borrowed a straw hat and raincoat from his host and returned home; but her dew-like figure lingered in his mind, and when at dawn he finally dozed off, he dreamed of going to Manago’s house, where he found an imposing gate and a mansion, with shutters and blinds lowered and the lady residing gracefully inside. Manago came out to welcome him. “Unable to forget your kindness, I have longed for you to visit,” she said. “Please come inside.” Leading him in, she entertained him elaborately with saké and small dishes of food. Enraptured, he finally shared her pillow, but then day broke and his dream faded. “How I wish it had been true,” he thought. In his excitement, he forgot breakfast and left the house in high spirits.

Arriving at Shingu, Toyoo asked for the house of Agata no Manago, but no one had heard of it. He continued his inquiries wearily into the afternoon, when the servant girl approached him from the east. Overjoyed to see her, he said, “Where is your house? I have come for the umbrella.” The girl smiled and said, “You were good to come; please follow me.” She led the way and in no time said, “Here it is.” He saw a high gate and a large house. Everything, even the shut- ters and the lowered blinds, was exactly as he had seen in his dream. Marvelous, he thought as he went through the gate. Running ahead, the servant girl said, “The gentleman has come for his umbrella, and I have led him here.” Manago came out, saying, “Where is he? Show him this way.” Toyoo said, “There is a Master Abe in Shingu, with whom I have been studying for some years. I am on my way to see him and thought that I would stop here for the umbrella. It was rude of me to call unexpectedly. Now that I know where you

162 book four

live, I shall come again.” Manago detained him. “Maroya, do not allow him to leave,” she said. The servant girl stood in his way, saying, “You forced us to take the umbrella, did you not? In return, we shall force you to stay.” Pushing him from behind, she guided him to a south-facing room. Woven mats had been placed on the wooden floor; the curtain stands, the decorated cabinet, and the illustrated draperies—all were fine antiques.11 This was not the home of any ordinary per- son. Manago entered and said, “For certain reasons, this has become a house without a master, and so we cannot enter- tain you properly. Let me just offer you a cup of poor saké.” Maroya spread delicacies from the mountains and the seas on immaculate stands and trays, presented a flask and an unglazed cup, and poured for him. Toyoo thought that he was dreaming again and must awaken. That everything was real made it all the more wonderful for him.

When both guest and host were feeling the effects of drink, Manago raised her cup to Toyoo. Her face was like the surface of a pond that warmly greets the spring breeze and reflects the limbs of the cherry, laden with luscious pink blossoms; and her voice was as bewitching as the song of the warbler, fluttering from treetop to treetop, as she said, “If I keep my shameful thoughts to myself and fall ill as a result, which god will carry the undeserved blame?12 Do not imagine that I speak flippantly. I was born in the capital but lost my parents early and was reared by my nurse. Already three years have passed since I married a man named Agata, an assistant to the governor of this province, and came down here with him. This spring, before completing his term, my husband died of some trifling disease, leaving me with no one to rely on. When I learned that my nurse, back in the capital, had become a nun and set out on ascetic wanderings, that place, too, became for me an unknown land. Take pity on me. From your kindness yesterday as we took shelter from the rain, I know that you are a truehearted man, and so I ask that I may devote the rest of my life to serving you. If you do not

a serpent ’ s lust 163

dismiss me in disgust, let us initiate, with this cup, a vow of one thousand years.” Since in his agitated longing for her he had hoped for exactly this, Toyoo felt his heart leap with joy, like a bird soaring from its roost, but then he recalled that he was not yet on his own and did not have permission from his father and brother. Now joyous, now afraid, he could not find words with which to reply right away. Seeing his hesitation, Manago looked forlorn and said, “I am ashamed at having spoken, from a woman’s shallow heart, foolish words that I cannot take back. Miserable creature that I am, it was wrong for me to trouble you instead of sinking beneath the waves. Although I did not speak flippantly, please take my words as a drunken jest and cast them into the sea.” Toyoo said, “From the first, I thought that you were a high-ranking lady from the capital, and I was right. How often can someone who has grown up on this whale-haunted shore expect to hear such joyful words? I did not answer straight away because I still serve my father and my brother and have nothing to call my own but my nails and hair. I can only lament my lack of for- tune, for I have no betrothal gift with which to welcome you as my bride. If you are willing to put up with all adversity, then I will do anything to stand by you, forgetting filial obe- dience and my status for the sake of the mountain of love, where even Confucius stumbled.”13 “What joyful words I hear,” she said. “In that case, do please come and stay from time to time. Here is a sword that my late husband cherished as his greatest treasure. Wear it always at your waist.” She handed it to him. Decorated with gold and silver, it was a wonderfully tempered antique. To refuse a gift at the start of their relationship would be inauspicious, he thought, and so he accepted it. “Stay here tonight,” she said, eager to detain

l. 22 “stand by you”: that is, become your husband. l. 25 “stay from time to time”: in Heian court society, it was customary for the

husband and wife to live separately and for the husband to spend the night at his wife’s residence from time to time.

164 book four

him, but he replied, “My father would punish me if I slept away from home without his leave. I shall make some clever excuse tomorrow night and come.” He departed. That night, too, he lay awake until dawn.

Taro rose early to assemble the net boys.14 Glancing into the bedroom through a gap in the door, he saw Toyoo in bed and, beside the pillow, a sword glittering in the lingering lamplight. “Strange, where did he get that?” Suspicious, he opened the door roughly, and Toyoo awoke to the sound. See- ing Taro there, he said, “Do you need me for something?” Taro said, “What is that glittery thing beside your pillow? Valuables have no place in a fisherman’s house. How Father would scold you if he saw it.” Toyoo said, “I did not spend money to buy it. Someone gave it to me yesterday, and I have placed it here.” Taro said, “Who in these parts would give you such a treasure? If you ask me, even these bothersome Chi- nese writings that you collect are a terrible waste of money, but I have held my tongue until now because Father has said nothing about it. I suppose you plan to wear that sword in the procession at the Great Shrine Festival.15 Have you lost your mind?” He spoke so loudly that his father heard him. “What has that useless boy done? Bring him here, Taro,” he called. Taro replied, “Where could he have gotten it? Buying a glittery thing such as a general should wear—it is not right. Please call him to you and ask him about it. As for me, the net boys are probably loafing.” With this he went out. The mother summoned Toyoo: “Why did you buy such a thing? Both rice and cash belong to Taro. What can you call your own? We have always let you do as you please, but if Taro were to turn against you over something like this, where in the world would you live? How can one who studies the wisdom of the past fail to understand a matter as simple as this?” Toyoo said, “Truly, I did not buy it. Someone gave it to me for a good reason, but Brother was suspicious when he saw it and said what he said.” The father shouted, “And what have you done to deserve such a gift? I am even more

a serpent ’ s lust 165

suspicious now. Tell us the whole story this moment.” Toyoo said, “I am too embarrassed. I shall explain through someone else.” His father said roughly, “To whom can you speak if not to your parents and brother?” Taro’s wife, the mistress of the house, was seated to one side. She said, “Inadequate though I am, I shall listen to his story. Come with me.” Thus making peace among them, she stood and led Toyoo out of the room. “I had planned to tell you secretly, even if Brother had not seen the sword and questioned me, but I was scolded before I could. A certain man’s wife,16 now left defenseless, asked me to care for her and gave me the sword. For me to pro- ceed without permission, when I am not on my own, could bring the heavy penalty of disinheritance, and so I regret all the more what I have done. Please, Sister, take pity on me.” The mistress of the house smiled: “For some time, I have felt sorry that you sleep alone. This is very good news. Inad- equate though I am, I shall put in a good word for you.” That night she explained the situation to Taro. “Do you not think it very fortunate?” she said. “Please speak with Father and work things out.” Taro knitted his brows: “Strange. I have never heard of an assistant to the governor named Agata. Since our family is the village head, we could hardly have failed to hear of the death of such a person. Anyway, bring the sword here.” She returned immediately with the sword, and Taro examined it closely. Heaving a great sigh, he said, “This is terrible. Recently a court minister presented a great many treasures to the avatar when his prayer was fulfilled,17 but the sacred objects quickly vanished from the shrine trea- sury, whereupon the head priest appealed to the provincial governor. In order to find the thief, the governor sent the vice governor, Fun’ya no Hiroyuki, to the head priest’s mansion; and I have heard that he is now devoting all his attention to this matter. However you look at it, this is not a sword that a mere provincial official would have worn. I shall show it to Father.” Taking it to him, he explained the dreadful circum- stances. “What should we do?” he asked. His father blanched.

166 book four

“This is a wretched business indeed. What retribution from a former life could have aroused such evil thoughts in a boy who, until now, never stole so much as a hair? If this matter is exposed by someone else, our family could be wiped out. For the sake of our ancestors and descendents, I shall har- bor no regrets over one unfilial child. Turn him in tomorrow morning,” he said. Taro waited for dawn and then went to the head priest’s mansion, where he explained matters and displayed the sword. Astonished, the head priest said, “This sword was indeed an offering from the minister.” The vice governor heard and said, “We must find the other missing objects. Arrest him.” Ten soldiers set out with Taro in the lead. Toyoo knew nothing of this and was reading when the soldiers rushed in and arrested him. “What is my crime?” he asked, but they paid no attention and tied him up. Now that it had come to this, father, mother, Taro, and his wife all were lost in grief. “A summons from the government office! Hurry up!” the soldiers cried as they surrounded Toyoo and pushed him along to the mansion. The vice governor glared at him: “Your theft of sacred treasures is an unprecedented crime against the state. Where have you hidden the various other treasures? Tell me everything.” Finally understanding, Toyoo began to weep and said, “I have stolen nothing. For this and that reason, the wife of a certain Agata gave the sword to me, saying that her late husband had worn it. Please sum- mon this woman, right away, and you will understand my innocence.” “We have never had an assistant named Agata. Such lies will only make your crimes greater.” “Why would I lie, when I have already been arrested like this? I beg of you, please find that woman and question her.” The vice governor turned to the soldiers and said, “Where is the house of Agata no Manago? Take him with you, arrest her, and bring them back here.”

The soldiers bowed respectfully and, pushing Toyoo along once more, went to the house. The posts of the imposing gate were rotting, and most of the roof tiles had fallen off

a serpent ’ s lust 167

and shattered; ferns had taken root and were trailing from the eaves.18 The place did not appear to be occupied. Toyoo was dumbfounded. Soldiers went around and assembled the neighbors. Old woodcutters, rice huskers, and the like knelt in terror. A soldier said to them, “Who lived in this house? Is it true that the wife of a man named Agata lives here?” An elderly blacksmith came forward and said, “I have never heard of a person by that name. Until three years ago, a man named Suguri lived here, and a lively, prosperous place it was, but then he sailed for Tsukushi with a load of merchan- dise and the ship was lost.19 After that, the remaining peo- ple scattered, and no one has lived here since; but the old lacquer maker here says that he was surprised to see this boy go inside yesterday and then leave a little while later.” “Let us take a good look, in any case, and report to our lord,” said the soldiers. They pushed open the gates and went in. The house was even more dilapidated than the exterior. They moved farther inside. In the spacious landscape garden, the pond had dried up, and even the water weeds had withered. A giant pine, blown over in the wind, lay ominously in the drooping thicket on the wild moor. When they opened the shutters of the guest hall, a reeking gust of air came at them, and everyone fell back in terror. Toyoo was speechless with fear and sorrow.

Among the soldiers was a bold one named Kose no Kumagashi. “Follow me,” he said as he went in, stomping roughly on the floorboards. An inch of dust had piled up. Amid the rat droppings, beside an old curtain stand, sat a blossom-like woman. Addressing her, Kumagashi said, “The governor summons you. Come quickly.” When she did not reply, he approached and tried to grasp her. Suddenly there was a clap of thunder as violent as though the ground itself were splitting open. They had no time to escape; everyone toppled over. When they finally looked up, the woman had vanished without a trace. Something glittered on the floor. Creeping forward, they found Korean brocades,

168 book four

Chinese damasks, shizuri weavings, katori weavings, shields, halberds, quivers, hoes, and the like—the lost sacred trea- sures.20 Gathering up these objects and carrying them back, the soldiers recounted the strange events in detail. The vice governor and the head priest, recognizing the work of an evil spirit, relaxed their investigation of Toyoo. Nevertheless, he could not escape his obvious offense. He was sent to the gov- ernor’s mansion and confined in jail. The Oya family made large payments in an attempt to redeem him and were able to obtain a pardon after about a hundred days. Toyoo said, “Under the circumstances, I would be ashamed to mingle in society. I would like to visit my sister in Yamato and live there for a while.” His family replied, “Truly, one is likely to fall gravely ill after such a dreadful experience. Go and spend some months there.” They sent him off with attendants.

Toyoo’s elder sister, the Oyas’ second child, lived in a place called Tsubaichi with her husband, a merchant named Tanabe no Kanetada. They were delighted to have Toyoo visit them and, taking pity on him for the events of the past few months, consoled him warmly, saying, “Stay here just as long as you like.” Tsubaichi was near the temple at Hatsuse. Among the many buddhas, that of Hatsuse in particular was known as far away as China for its wonderful effective- ness and so drew many pilgrims from the capital and from the countryside, especially in the spring. Since the pilgrims always stayed here, travelers’ lodgings lined the streets. The Tanabe family dealt in lamp wicks and other goods for the sacred flames. Into the crowd of customers came a beautiful, aristocratic lady with a servant girl, apparently on an incog- nito pilgrimage from the capital, asking for incense. Seeing Toyoo, the servant girl said, “The master is here!” Startled, he looked up—it was Manago and Maroya. Crying out in ter- ror, he fled to the back. “What is going on?” asked Kanetada and his wife. “That demon has followed me here. Do not go

l. 7 “obvious offense”: possession of a stolen sword.

a serpent ’ s lust 169

near it,” said Toyoo, desperately looking for a place to hide. “Where? Where?” cried the other customers. Manago went among them and said, “Do not be startled, people. My hus- band, do not be afraid. In my sorrow at having incriminated you through my own imprudence, I wanted to seek out your home, explain the circumstances, and put your heart at rest. I am overjoyed that I could find this place and meet with you again. Shopmaster, please listen carefully and decide for yourself. If I were some kind of monster, could I appear among this crowd of people and, moreover, at noon on such a tranquil day as this? My robes have seams; when I face the sun, I cast a shadow. Please consider the truth of what I say and throw off your doubts.” Feeling more like himself again, Toyoo said, “It is clear that you are not human, for when I was arrested and went with the soldiers, we found the place in a shambles, utterly unlike its condition of the day before, and there, in a house befitting a demon, you sat alone; and when the soldiers tried to capture you, you caused a clear sky suddenly to shake with thunder, and then you disappeared without a trace. All of this I saw with my own eyes. Why have you come chasing after me again? Go away at once.” Weeping, Manago said, “Truly, it is no won- der that you think this way, but listen now a little longer to my words. Hearing that you had been taken to the govern- ment office, I approached the old man next door, to whom I had shown some kindness in the past, and persuaded him to transform the place quickly into a house in the wilderness. Maroya contrived to have thunder sound when they tried to arrest me. After that, we hired a boat and fled to Naniwa.21 In my desire to learn what had become of you, I prayed to the Buddha here. It is through his great compassion that, with the sacred sign of the twin cedars,22 we have flowed

l. 11 “My robes . . . a shadow”: a popular belief held that ghosts cast no shad- ows, nor did their clothing have seams, however cunningly they might disguise themselves as humans.

170 book four

again together on the rapids of joy.23 How could a woman have stolen those many sacred treasures? That was the doing of my late husband’s wicked heart. Please consider carefully and try to grasp even a dewdrop of the love I feel.” The tears streamed down her face. Now suspicious, now sympathetic, Toyoo could find nothing more to say. Kanetada and his wife, seeing Manago’s reasonableness and feminine demeanor, no longer harbored the slightest doubt: “We were terrified by Toyoo’s account, but surely such things could not occur in this day and age. We are deeply moved by the feeling you have shown in your long search and shall let you stay here, even if Toyoo does not agree.” They showed her to a room. Ingratiating herself to them during the next day or two, she entreated them, and they, moved by the depth of her deter- mination, prevailed on Toyoo and finally arranged a wedding ceremony. Toyoo’s heart melted day by day; he had always rejoiced in her beauty, and as he exchanged thousand-year vows with her, clouds rose by night on Mount Takama of Kazuraki, and the rains subsided at dawn with the bell of the temple at Hatsuse.24 Toyoo regretted only that their reunion had been so long delayed.

The Third Month came. Kanetada said to Toyoo and his wife, “Of course, it does not compare with the capital, but it surpasses Kii: Yoshino, fair of name, is a lovely place in spring.25 Mount Mifune, Natsumi River—one would never tire of the views even if one saw them every day, and how fas- cinating they will be right now. Let us set off.” Manago smiled and said, “People of the capital, too, say that they regret not seeing the place that good people consider good,26 but since childhood I have suffered from an ailment that causes blood to rush to my head when I go among a crowd or walk a long distance, and so, to my deep regret, I cannot go with you. I eagerly await the souvenir that you will surely bring me from the mountains.” Kanetada and his wife encouraged her, saying, “Yes, walking would no doubt be painful. We do not have a carriage, but one way or another we shall not let

a serpent ’ s lust 171

your feet touch the ground. Think how worried Toyoo would be if you stayed behind.” Toyoo said, “Since they have spoken so reassuringly, you cannot refuse to go, even if you collapse on the way.” And so, reluctantly, she went. Everyone dressed gaily, but none could compare with Manago’s beauty and elegance. They stopped at a certain temple with which they had long been on friendly terms. The head priest welcomed them: “You have come late this spring. Half the blossoms have fallen, and the warbler’s song has grown a bit wild, but I shall show you where to find the good spots that remain.” He served them a beautifully simple and refreshing evening meal. The sky at dawn was thick with haze, but as it cleared they looked out from the temple’s high vantage point and could clearly see monks’ residences here and there below. Mountain birds were chirping everywhere; trees and grasses blossomed in a profusion of color. Although it was a moun- tain village like any other, they felt as though their eyes had been opened anew. Thinking that the falls offered the most for a first-time visitor, they employed a guide familiar with that area and set out. They wound their way down the valley. At the site of the ancient detached palace, the rapids crashing along the boulders and the tiny sweetfish struggling against the current delighted their eyes.27 They spread out their cypress boxes and reveled in the outing as they dined.

Someone approached them, stepping from boulder to boulder. It was an old man with hair like a bundle of hemp threads, but with sturdy-looking limbs. He came alongside the falls. Seeing the group, he eyed them suspiciously, where- upon Manago and Maroya turned their backs and pretended not to see him. Glaring at them, the old man muttered, “Dis- graceful. Demons. Why do you go on deceiving people? Do you think that you can get away with this before my very eyes?” Hearing him, the two sprang to their feet and plunged into the falls. Water boiled up into the sky, and they vanished from sight. Just then, as though the clouds had overturned a pot of ink, rain began to fall so hard that it might have

172 book four

crushed dwarf bamboo. The old man calmed the panicky group and led them down to the village, where they cringed together under the eaves of a shabby house, feeling more dead than alive. The old man said to Toyoo, “Looking closely at your face, I see that you are tormented by that demon. If I do not help you, you will surely lose your life. Be very careful from now on.” Pressing his forehead to the ground, Toyoo related the affair from the beginning. “Please help me keep my life,” he pleaded fearfully and respectfully. The old man said, “It was just as I expected. That demon is a giant snake and very old. Having a lascivious nature, it is said to bear unicorns when it couples with a bull, and dragon-steeds when it couples with a stallion. It appears that out of lust, inspired by your beauty, it has attached itself to you and led you astray. If you do not take special care with one so tena- cious as this, you will surely lose your life.” When the old man had finished, they were more terrified than ever and began to pay reverence to him as though he were a god in human form. The old man smiled: “I am not a god. I am an old man named Tagima no Kibito who serves at the Yamato Shrine. I shall see you on your way. Let us go.” He started out, and they followed him until they reached home.28

The next day, Toyoo went to the village of Yamato, thanked the old man, and gave him three bolts of Mino silk and twenty pounds of Tsukushi cotton.29 “Please perform a purification rite to protect me from the monster,” he asked respectfully. The old man accepted the gifts and divided them among the priests under him, keeping not a single measure for himself. Then he turned to Toyoo: “The beast has attached itself to you out of lust for your beauty. You, for your part, have been bewitched by the shape it took and have lost your manly spirit. If henceforth you summon your courage and calm your rest- less heart, you will not need to borrow an old man’s powers to repel these demons. You must quiet your heart.” Feeling as though he had awakened from a dream, Toyoo thanked the old man profusely and returned. To Kanetada he said,

a serpent ’ s lust 173

“It is because of the unrighteousness of my heart that I have been deceived by the beast these years and months. There is no reason for me to presume on your family, neglecting my duty to my parents and elder brother. I am deeply grateful for your kindness, and I shall come again.” So saying, he returned to the province of Kii.

When they heard of these dreadful events, Toyoo’s par- ents, Taro, and Taro’s wife felt even greater pity for him in his blamelessness and also feared the demon’s tenacity. “It is because he is single,” they said, and discussed finding a wife for him. In the village of Shiba lived a man known as the steward of Shiba.30 He had sent his daughter into service

174 book four

Image has been suppressed

at the sovereign’s palace, but his request that she be relieved had been granted, and, thinking that Toyoo would make a fine son-in-law, he approached the Oya family through a go- between. The talks went well, and in no time the two were engaged. An escort was sent to the capital for her, and so the palace lady, whose name was Tomiko, happily came back home. Having grown accustomed to her years in service at the palace, she surpassed other women in the beauty of her manners and appearance. When Toyoo was received in Shiba, he saw that Tomiko was a great beauty. Satisfied in every respect, he could barely remember the giant snake that had been in love with him. Nothing unusual occurred the

a serpent ’ s lust 175

“ The two sprang to

their feet and plunged

into the falls.”

Image has been suppressed

first night, and so I shall not write about it.31 The second night, Toyoo was feeling pleasantly tipsy. “Considering your years of living in the palace, I suppose you have grown to dis- like us rustics. I wonder which captains and councillors you slept with there. It is too late now, but I am quite provoked with you,” he said playfully. Tomiko looked up quickly: “And I am all the more provoked with you, who have forgotten your old vows and bestowed your favors on this undistinguished person.”32 The voice was unmistakably Manago’s, though her form had changed. Appalled, Toyoo felt his hair stand on end and was speechless with horror. The woman smiled: “Do not be startled, my husband. Even though you have quickly

176 book four

Image has been suppressed

forgotten our vows of the sea and of the mountains,33 a bond from a former life ensured that I would meet you again. But if you believe what others say and try to avoid me, I shall hate you and take revenge. However tall the mountains of Kii may be, I shall pour your blood from the peaks into the valleys. Do not throw away your precious life.” He trembled with fear and felt faint, thinking that he was about to be taken. Some- one emerged from behind a folding screen, saying, “Master, why do you fret so? This is such an auspicious match.” It was Maroya. Aghast, Toyoo shut his eyes and fell face down. Manago and Maroya spoke to him by turns, now soothing, now threatening, but he remained unconscious until dawn.

“ Master, why do you

fret so? This is such

an auspicious match.”

a serpent ’ s lust 177

Image has been suppressed

Then Toyoo slipped out of the bedroom, went to the stew- ard, and described to him these frightening events. “How can I escape? Please help me find an answer,” he said, keep- ing his voice low in case someone was listening behind him. The steward and his wife blanched at the news and were grief-stricken: “What shall we do? There is a monk from Kurama Temple in the capital who goes on a pilgrimage to Kumano every year.34 Yesterday he took up lodgings at a temple atop the hill across the way. He is a wonderfully effi- cacious dharma master, revered by everyone in the village for his skill in exorcising plagues, evil spirits, and locusts. Let us call on him for help.” They sent for him quickly and, when he finally came, explained the situation. With his nose in the air, the monk said, “It should not be difficult to capture these fiends. You need not worry.” He spoke as though nothing could be easier, and everyone felt relieved. First he asked for some orpiment, which he mixed with water and poured into a small flask. Then he turned toward the bedroom. When everyone ran to hide, the monk said with a sneer, “All of you stay there, young and old. I shall capture this giant snake now and show it to you.” He advanced toward the bedroom. The moment he opened the door, a giant snake thrust out its head and confronted him. And what a head this was! Fill- ing the door frame, gleaming whiter than a pile of snow, its eyes like mirrors, its horns like leafless trees, its gaping mouth three feet across with a crimson tongue protruding, it seemed about to swallow him in a single furious gulp. He screamed and threw down the flask. Since his legs would not support him, he rolled about and then crawled and stumbled away, barely making his escape. To the others he said, “Terri- ble! It is a calamitous deity; how can a monk like me exorcise it? Were it not for these hands and feet, I would have lost my life.” Even as he spoke, he lost consciousness. They held him up, but his face and skin looked as though they had been dyed black and red, and he was so hot that touching him was like holding one’s hand to a fire. He appeared to have been

178 book four

struck by poisonous vapors, for after he came to himself he could move only his eyes, and, although he seemed to want to speak, he could not produce a sound. They poured water over him, but finally he died. Seeing this, they felt as though their spirits had fled their bodies, and they could only weep in terror.

Composing himself, Toyoo said, “Since it pursues me so tenaciously and cannot be exorcised by even such an effi- cacious monk, it will track me down and catch me as long as I am here between the heavens and the earth. It is false hearted of me to let others suffer for the sake of my own life. I shall not ask for help any longer. Please set your minds at ease.” He started toward the bedroom. The steward and his wife cried, “Have you lost your senses?” but he paid no attention and kept going. When he opened the door gently, all inside was calm and quiet. The two were seated facing each other. Tomiko turned to Toyoo: “What enmity has led you to enlist another to capture me? If you continue to treat me like an enemy, I shall not only take your life, but also tor- ment the people of this village. Be glad that I am faithful to you; forget your fickle thoughts.” As she spoke, she put on coquettish airs, moving him to disgust. Toyoo replied, “It is as the proverb says: ‘Though a man means no harm to the tiger, the tiger will hurt the man.’35 Your unhuman feelings have led you to pursue me, and even to torment me time and time again, and, what is more, you answer my playful words by speaking of a horrible revenge. You terrify me. Neverthe- less, your love for me is, in the end, no different from the love that humans feel. It is cruel for me to stay here and cause these people to grieve. If only you will spare Tomiko’s life, you may take me anywhere you wish.” She nodded joy- fully in agreement.

Toyoo went again to the steward and said, “Since I have been possessed by this wretched demon, it would be wrong

l. 10 “between the heavens and the earth”: that is, as long as I live.

a serpent ’ s lust 179

for me to stay on here and torment everyone. If I may have your permission to depart right now, I am sure that your daughter’s life will be spared.” The steward refused, saying, “I know one end of the bow from the other, and the Oyas’ view of such an unavailing notion would put me to shame. Let us think some more. There is a priest named Hokai at the Dojoji in Komatsubara, a venerable prayer master.36 He is very old now, and I have heard that he does not leave his room, but surely he will not reject an appeal from me.” He galloped off on horseback. Since the way was long, he reached the temple at midnight. The old priest crept out of his bedroom and listened to the story. “Indeed, you must be perplexed. Having grown so old and foolish, I doubt that I will be of any use, but I cannot ignore a calamity in your family.37 You go ahead; I shall follow soon.” He took out a stole scented with the smoke of poppy seeds and gave it to the steward.38 “Trick the monster into coming close, throw this over its head, and press down with all your might. If you falter, it will probably escape. Pray well and do your best,” the priest instructed him carefully. Rejoicing, the steward galloped back.

He quietly summoned Toyoo, exhorted him to carry out the priest’s instructions carefully, and handed him the stole. Toyoo hid it inside his robes and returned to the bedroom. “The steward has just given me permission to go. Let us be on our way.” She was delighted. Pulling out the stole, he quickly threw it over her and pressed down with all his strength. “Oh! You’re hurting me! How can you be so heartless? Take your hands off me!” she cried, but he pressed down ever harder. Priest Hokai’s palanquin arrived right away. Helped inside by the steward’s people, he mumbled incantations as he pushed Toyoo away and lifted the stole. Tomiko was lying prone, unconscious, and on top of her a white serpent, more than three feet long, lay coiled, perfectly motionless. The old

l. 4 “I know one end of the bow from the other”: in other words, “I have some knowledge of the martial arts” or “I am a samurai.”

180 book four

priest picked it up and placed it in an iron bowl that one of his disciples held up to him. As he renewed his incan- tations, a little snake, about one foot long, came slithering out from behind the folding screen. He took it up, placed it in the bowl, covered the bowl tightly with the stole, and entered his palanquin with it. The people of the household, tears streaming down their faces, held their hands together and paid reverence to him. Returning to the temple, he had a deep hole dug in front of the main hall, had the bowl buried there with all its contents, and forbade them ever to appear in this world again. It is said that a Serpent Mound stands there to this day.39 The steward’s daughter eventually fell ill and died. Toyoo’s life was spared. So the story has been handed down.40

N O T E S

1. Murasaki Shikibu, The Tale of Genji, trans. Edward G. Seidensticker

(New York: Knopf, 1976), pp. 394–400.

2. Donald L. Philippi, trans., Kojiki (Princeton, N.J.: Princeton Univer-

sity Press, 1969), pp. 178, n. 4, 415, additional n. 21.

3. Diana Yu, trans., “Eternal Prisoner Under the Thunder Peak Pagoda,”

in Y. W. Ma and Joseph S. M. Lau, eds., Traditional Chinese Stories:

Themes and Variations (New York: Columbia University Press, 1978),

pp. 355–378.

4. Murasaki Shikibu, Genji monogatari, ed. Yamagishi Tokuhei, Nihon

koten bungaku taikei, vol. 14 (Tokyo: Iwanami, 1958), p. 178.

5. Murasaki Shikibu, Genji monogatari, NKBT, vol. 14, p. 196.

6. Joanne R. Bernardi, Writing in Light: The Silent Scenario and the Japa-

nese Pure Film Movement (Detroit: Wayne State University Press,

2001), pp. 300–304.

7. “what era was it?” (itsu no tokiyo nariken): this opening formula echoes

the openings of earlier tales, such as The Tale of Genji—“In which

reign was it?” (izure no oontoki ni ka)—and thus gives the reader an

early hint that the story is probably set in the Heian period.

8. Yamato Province corresponds to the modern Nara Prefecture, north

of Shingu and south of Kyoto.

a serpent ’ s lust 181

9. Toyoo is showing off his learning. This poem, by Naga Okimaro,

appears in the Man’yoshu, no. 265. Sano Crossing was southwest of Cape Miwa, now in the city of Shingu.

10. Nachi refers to the various sacred sites of the Nachi area, including

the Kumano Nachi Shrine and Seiganto Temple, in Katsuura, south

of Shingu. 11. In former times, mats (tatami) were placed on a polished wooden

floor as needed for guests. The curtain stand (kicho), decorated cabinet (mizushi), and draperies (kabeshiro) were all characteristic furnishings

of aristocratic houses in the Heian period. The cabinet would have

been decorated with lacquer; the draperies, often painted or embroi-

dered silk, were used to separate one living space from another.

12. That is, “If I died without saying anything, some god would be blamed

unfairly for my death, and so I shall tell you.” Manago’s speech tends

to be flowery and decorated with poetic allusions. In this case, the

allusion is to a poem by Ariwara no Narihira:

If I died of love unknown to others, pointlessly,

which god would carry the unfounded blame? (Tales of Ise, sec.

89; Shinzokukokinshu, no. 1157)

13. The origin of the proverb “Confucius stumbled on the mountain

of love” is unclear. It appears in the “Kocho” (Butterflies) chapter of The Tale of Genji, in reference to Higekuro (Murasaki Shikibu, Tale of

Genji, p. 424).

14. An allusion to a poem by Naga Okimaro:

Even in the palace it can be heard—

the cry of a fisherman assembling the net boys to pull in the

nets. (Man’yoshu, no. 238)

15. Great Shrine (Shingu Hayatama Jinja): the festival was held on the fifteenth and sixteenth days of the Ninth Month.

16. “certain man’s wife”: here and later, the text uses stock expressions to

indicate, without repeating them, that all the details are being provided.

17. “avatar”: in the blend of Buddhism and Shinto that was characteristic

of premodern Japan, the Shinto deity enshrined at Shingu was con- sidered an avatar (gongen) of a Buddhist figure.

18. This description of the house and grounds echoes that of the residence

of the lady of the “evening faces,” in the “Yugao” (Evening Faces) chap- ter of The Tale of Genji (Murasaki Shikibu, Tale of Genji, pp. 68–69).

182 book four

19. Tsukushi is the island of Kyushu.

20. “shizuri”: cloth woven from various fabrics and used principally for

sashes in ancient times.

“katori” (literally, “tight weave”): a thin but tightly woven silk fabric.

“hoes” (kuwa, here perhaps “plows”): symbolic of agriculture, are

often found among a shrine’s treasures.

21. Naniwa is the present-day city of Osaka.

22. Twin cedars standing on the banks of the Hatsuse River and associ-

ated with the sun goddess, Amaterasu, were celebrated in poetry as

a sign of meeting or reuniting. In the “Tamakazura” (The Jeweled

Chaplet) chapter of The Tale of Genji, Ukon, overjoyed to find Tamaka-

zura at Hasedera, recites:

Had I not come to the spot where twin cedars stand

would I have met you on this ancient riverbank?

(Murasaki Shikibu, Genji monogatari, NKBT, vol. 15, p. 354)

23. After reciting her waka, Ukon adds, “on the rapids of joy” (ureshiki se

ni mo), in which se (rapids) also denotes an occasion or opportunity

and echoes the “se” in Hatsuse (Murasaki Shikibu, Genji monogatari,

NKBT, vol. 15, p. 354).

24. Mount Takama is the highest peak in the Katsuragi (formerly,

Kazuraki) Range, southwest of Hatsuse. The passage recalls a poem

by Retired Emperor Go-Daigo:

Clouds on Kazuraki’s Mount Takama:

even from a distance it is clear that evening showers fall.

(Shinshuishu, no. 289)

The image of clouds rising at night and producing rain, which

then abates at dawn, suggests lovemaking. There is perhaps an

echo here of the legend of King Xiang of Chu, who dreams that

he has slept with a woman at Shaman Hill who turns out to have

been a rain cloud (Sun Yü, “The Kao T’ang Fu,” in The Temple

and Other Poems, trans. Arthur Waley [New York: Knopf, 1923],

pp. 65–72).

The bell at Hatsuse Temple anticipates that of Dojoji, the temple that figures in the ending of the story.

25. There is a strong association between yayoi, the third month of spring

in the Japanese lunar calendar, and cherry blossoms.

“fair of name” (naguwashi): a pillow-word for Yoshino.

a serpent ’ s lust 183

26. Manago alludes to a poem by Emperor Tenmu: “On the occasion of a

visit to the Yoshino palace”:

Yoshino, which good people could well see was good, and said

is good—

look well, good people, look well. (Man’yoshu, no. 27)

The poet puns on “good” (yoshi), “well” (yoku), and Yoshino (good field).

27. The place described is Miyataki (Palace Falls), on the Natsumi River.

Royal visits to the villa that used to stand there are mentioned fre-

quently in the Man’yoshu. 28. The Yamato Shrine, now called Oyamato Jinja, is in the present-

day city of Tenri, about three miles north of Tsubaichi. The old man

would have passed through Tsubaichi on his way back to the shrine,

in any case.

29. Mino Province (Gifu Prefecture) produced high-quality silk used by

aristocrats.

30. Uzuki Hiroshi convincingly identifies Shiba with the present Kurisu-

gawa area of Nakaheji-cho (formerly, Shiba-mura), Nishimuro-gun, Wakayama Prefecture, about twenty miles west of Shingu (Ugetsu monogatari hyoshaku, Nihon koten hyoshaku zenchushaku sosho [Tokyo: Kadokawa, 1969], pp. 538–539).

“steward” (shoji): originally designated one who managed a manor (shoen) on behalf of its aristocratic owner, but later came to be applied also to village heads and wealthy families of a region.

31. “I shall not write about it”: Akinari uses a narrative device often found

in Heian monogatari, such as The Tale of Genji.

32. Tomiko echoes the spirit that possesses the lady in the “Evening Faces”

chapter of The Tale of Genji: “Though I admire you so much, you do

not think of visiting me, but instead keep company with this undis-

tinguished person and bestow your favors on her. I am mortified and

hurt” (Murasaki Shikibu, Genji monogatari, NKBT, vol. 14, p. 146).

33. “vows of the sea and of the mountains”: in addition to reminding the

reader of the cliché that vows are “deeper than the seas and higher

than the mountains,” this phrase refers to the seas around Kii Prov-

ince and the mountains in Yamato Province.

34. Kurama Temple is on Mount Kurama, in the north of Kyoto. Its men-

tion here is probably due to two literary precedents. First, a popular

tradition holds that Murasaki Shikibu was thinking of Mount Kurama

when she had Genji, seeking a cure for his illness, visit a sage in the

184 book four

northern hills in the “Wakamurasaki” (Lavender) chapter of The Tale

of Genji. Second, the monk Anchin of the Dojoji legend was from Kurama.

35. The biography of Guo Wen in the Jin shu (The Book of Jin, seventh

century) contains the lines “If a man has no wish to harm the beast,

the beast will not hurt the man.” In “Eternal Prisoner Under the

Thunder Peak Pagoda,” this saying becomes “Though a man means

no harm to the tiger, the tiger will hurt the man.”

36. Dojoji is about twenty-five miles from Shiba. 37. Hokai resembles the sage in the “Lavender” chapter of The Tale of

Genji, who “was old and bent and unable to leave his cave.” When

Genji goes to him to be cured of malaria, the sage says, “My mind has

left the world, and I have so neglected the ritual that it has quite gone

out of my head. I fear that your journey has been in vain” (Murasaki

Shikibu, Tale of Genji, pp. 84–85).

38. Poppy seeds were burned in exorcism rituals of esoteric Buddhism.

A vestment imbued with their smell, having been exposed to many

such rituals, was deemed to possess special powers. In the “Aoi”

(Heartvine) chapter of The Tale of Genji, the Rokujo lady is appalled to discover the scent in her own clothing. It is there because, against her

will, her jealous spirit has possessed Genji’s wife (Murasaki Shikibu,

Tale of Genji, p. 169).

39. A monument before the main hall of Dojoji is said to mark the site of the bell in which Anchin died. A “serpent mound” (jazuka) stands

outside the temple grounds, in what used to be an inlet, marking the

spot where Kiyohime is said to have plunged into the water.

40. The story ends, as it began, with a conventional formula (to nan

kataritsutaekeru). Some chapters of The Tale of Genji conclude with an

abbreviated form (to nan, to zo, or to ya), and most of the stories in the

late-Heian setsuwa collection Konjaku monogatari shu (Tales of Times Now Past, ca. 1120) end with to nan kataritsutaetaru to ya.

a serpent ’ s lust 185

BOOK FIVE

THE BLUE HOOD

t itle

The title, “Aozukin,” refers to the dark-blue cowl that Kaian transfers from his own head to the head of the mad abbot of Daichuji.

characters

After the large cast of “A Serpent’s Lust,” the number of char- acters shrinks in “The Blue Hood.” Kaian, or Myokei (1422– 1493), was a priest of the Soto school of Zen Buddhism, while the abbot of Daichuji is a fictional character.

places

“The Blue Hood” takes place at and near the Buddhist monastery Daichuji, on the lower slopes of Mount Ohira in Nishiyamada, village of Ohira, Tsuga County, Tochigi Prefec- ture (formerly, Shimotsuke Province). A large establishment,

Daichuji contains a number of buildings on about eighty wooded acres.

Like “Shiramine” and “The Owl of the Three Jewels,” “The Blue Hood” includes a michiyuki, though it is a very brief one:

Ryotaiji: temple of the Soto school of Zen Buddhism, in the city of Seki, Gifu Prefecture (formerly, Mino Province).

Ou: area around Echigo Province (Niigata Prefecture). Shimotsuke: Tochigi Prefecture.

Tonda: now called Tomita, part of the village of Ohira, Shi- motsuga County, Tochigi Prefecture. It used to be a sta-

tion on a post road.

t ime

Autumn of 1471 and winter of 1472.

background

In 1489, seventeen years after the probable setting of “The Blue Hood,” the locally powerful Oyama clan asked Kaian to reestablish Daichuji—which had been founded in 1154 as a monastery of the Shingon sect—as a monastery of the Soto school of Zen Buddhism. Shingon and Zen are clearly dis- tinguished in the story. Kaian is explicitly identified as a Zen master, while the abbot of Daichuji is referred to as an ajari, a title that designates a high clerical rank in Shingon. Shin- gon is the esoteric sect established by Kukai (Kobo Daishi), who figures in “The Owl of the Three Jewels.” Zen (medita- tion [Skt. dhyana]) Buddhism was introduced to China in 520 by the Indian monk Bodhidharma (Ch. Da Mo, J. Daruma), who is regarded as the first Zen patriarch. Zen emphasizes

the blue hood 187

“extralingual transmission” (kyogai or kyoge, short for kyoge- betsuden), the nonverbal conveyance of Buddhist truths from master to disciple, in preference to a reliance on the verbal teachings of the Buddha as recorded in the sutras. This is true of both the Soto school of Zen (Kaian’s affiliation) and the Rinzai school, which is more familiar in the West.

Like “The Chrysanthemum Vow,” “The Blue Hood” alludes to a sexual relationship between two males. Sexual relations between monks and acolytes were common in premodern Japan, and the sexual nature of the relationship in this story would have gone without saying.1 No stigma is attached to wakashudo (sexual relations between a man and a boy) per se. The abbot’s mistake is “failing to control his mind” and allow- ing himself to become attached to something ephemeral, which deters him from progress toward enlightenment. Attachment to a woman would have been just as undesirable for a monk in the society of the time. As Kamo no Chomei wrote in Hojoki (An Account of a Ten-Foot-Square Hut, 1212), “The essence of the Buddha’s teachings is that we should cling to nothing.”

aff init ies

“The Blue Hood” seems not to have been adapted from any particular Chinese or Japanese source. It recalls a number of Chinese and Japanese stories that deal with mad monks or cannibalism (or both), and some details were inspired by scenes in chapters 5 and 6 of Shi Nai’an and Luo Guan- zhong’s Shuihu zhuan (Water Margin, fourteenth century).

other observat ions

A confident, dependable man (Kaian)—a type established in “The Chrysanthemum Vow”—is contrasted with an unsta-

188 book f ive

ble man (the abbot), repeating a pattern seen in “Shiramine” and “The Owl of the Three Jewels.” Kaian’s maxim—“He who fails to control his mind becomes a demon; he who governs his mind attains to buddhahood”—applies equally well to Sutoku, in “Shiramine”; Hidetsugu, in “The Owl of the Three Jewels”; and the abbot, in “The Blue Hood.” To a lesser extent, it could also be applied to Katsushiro, in “The Reed-Choked House”; Shotaro, in “The Kibitsu Cauldron”; and Toyoo, in “A Serpent’s Lust.” Although the maxim has the look of a quotation, no source has been identified. “Hankai,” the last story in Akinari’s Harusame monogatari (Tales of the Spring Rain, 1808–1809), concludes with the same sentiment.

The structure of “The Blue Hood” roughly follows that outlined by Robert Ford Campany in his discussion of Chi- nese Buddhist tales: “A seed of religious instruction or pious habit is planted in the protagonist. . . . The protagonist does something that is ‘marked’ . . . in the field of specific Bud- dhist values or precepts. . . . There occurs an anomalous— often strikingly contranatural—response to the protagonist’s act. . . . Others react with amazement to the response. . . . These events in turn stimulate . . . positively marked Bud- dhist acts by others.”2

“The Blue Hood” has apparently been translated into Eng- lish more often than any other story in the collection—at least ten English versions exist, including this one.3 No doubt the taut, economical narrative, references to Zen Buddhism, and intrinsic drama of the story have appealed to translators.

L ong ago, there wascalled Zen Master Kaian. From the time he came of age, he understood the spirit of extralingual transmis-

the blue hood 189

Image has been suppressed

sion and surrendered his body to the clouds and waters. One year, having completed the summer retreat at Ryotai Temple, in Mino Province, he set out on a journey, having decided to spend that autumn in the Ou region.4 Traveling on and on, he entered the province of Shimotsuke.

The sun set as he reached a village called Tonda.5 When he approached a large, prosperous-looking house to ask for a night’s lodging, men who had just returned from the paddies and fields seemed to be struck with fear at the sight of a monk standing in the dim twilight. “The mountain demon is here! Everyone come out,” they shouted. An uproar began inside the house, with women and children screaming, thrashing about, and hiding in shadows and nooks. The master of the house took up a cowl-staff and rushed outside, where he found an old monk, close to fifty years of age, standing with a dark-blue hood on his head, a tattered black robe on his body, and a bundle on his back. Raising his walking staff, the monk beckoned to him: “Danapati, why do you take such precautions? I am an itinerant monk, waiting here for some- one to receive me as I seek lodgings for one night. To be met with such distrust is not what I expected. This haggard monk is not about to rob you. Please do not be suspicious of me.” The master of the house dropped his cowl-staff, clapped his hands, and laughed: “Thanks to those fellows’ undiscerning eyes, we have startled you, a venerable traveling monk. Let me compensate for our crime by offering you lodging here tonight.” With all signs of respect, he escorted the monk inside and cheerfully invited him to dine.

The master of the house gave this account: “There is a reason why those fellows panicked when they saw Your

l. 1 “clouds and waters”: that is, he traveled as an itinerant, mendicant monk, constantly on the move and without any particular destination, like clouds and water. Unsui (cloud-water) is a common word for an itin- erant monk.

l. 18 “Danapati” (J. dan’otsu): the Sanskrit word for a lay believer who sup- ports the monastic community with donations.

190 book f ive

Reverence and cried ‘The demon is here.’ I have a most unusual story to tell you. Please pass it on to others, though it is a strange, wild tale. There is a monastery on a mountain above this village.6 Originally, it was the family temple of the Oyama clan, and many priests of great virtue have resided there over the generations. The current ajari, the nephew of a certain lord, was famous for his learning and asceticism, and the people of the province were devoted to him, making frequent offerings of flowers and incense. He often visited my house, too, and spoke without reserve; but then came the spring of last year. He was invited to Koshi to adminis- ter the vows at an initiation ceremony and stayed for more than one hundred days.7 He brought back with him a servant boy in his twelfth or thirteenth year, whom he made his con- stant attendant. I noticed that he began to neglect his long- time practices, entranced as he was by the boy’s elegance and beauty. Then, around the Fourth Month of this year, the boy took to his bed with some slight illness, and as the days passed his condition grew more serious. The abbot, greatly distressed and saddened, even called in the official physician from the provincial capital, but their ministrations had no effect and the boy finally passed away. Feeling that the jewel of his breast had been snatched from him, that the blossom adorning his crown had been stripped away by a storm, the abbot had no tears to weep, no voice with which to cry out, and in the extremity of his grief he neither cremated the boy nor buried him, but pressed his face to the boy’s and held his hand, until, as the days went by, he lost his mind and began to play with the boy just as he had when the boy was alive, and, finally, lamenting the decomposition of the flesh, he ate the flesh and licked the bones until nothing was left. The other people of the temple fled in a panic, saying that their abbot

l. 16 “practices”: ascetic, religious practices designed to facilitate enlighten- ment.

l. 24 “storm”: the storm of evanescence, a common Buddhist metaphor.

the blue hood 191

had turned into a demon. Since then, he has come down the mountain every night, terrifying the villagers or digging up graves and eating fresh corpses. I had heard of demons from old tales, but now I have truly seen one with my own eyes. How can we put a stop to this? Every family now locks its doors tightly at dusk, and word has spread throughout the province, so that no one comes here any more. This is why you were mistaken for a demon.”

After hearing this tale, Kaian said, “Yes, strange things happen in this world. Among those who have been born as humans but end their days in foolishness and perversity, because they know not the greatness of the teachings of the

192 book f ive

Image has been suppressed

buddhas and bodhisattvas, there are countless examples, from the past down to the present, of those who, led astray by the karmic obstacles of lust and wrong thoughts, reveal their original forms and give vent to their resentments, or turn into demons or serpents to take retribution. There have also been people who turned into demons while they were still alive.8 A lady-in-waiting to the king of Chu turned into

“ He has come down

the mountain every

night, terrifying the

villagers.”

l. 3 “karmic obstacles”: actions (including mental activity) that obscure one’s understanding of Buddhist teachings and impede progress toward enlightenment.

l. 4 “original forms”: one’s form, such as an animal, in a previous life.

the blue hood 193

Image has been suppressed

a snake;9 Wang Han’s mother became an ogre; Wu Sheng’s wife became a moth.10 Also, long ago, when a certain travel- ing monk was staying over in a poor house, the night brought heavy rain and wind, so that the monk, lonely without even a lamp, could not sleep. As the night deepened, he heard the bleating of a sheep, and soon thereafter something sniffed at him intently, to see if he was asleep. Suspicious, the monk picked up his Zen staff, which lay by his pillow, and struck out forcefully, whereupon the thing fell over with a scream. Hearing the noise, the old woman who was the head of the household lit a lamp and brought it in, and by its light they saw a girl lying there. The old woman pleaded tearfully for the girl’s life. What could he do? Leaving things as they were, the monk departed; but later, when he had occasion to pass through the village again, he found many people gathered together in a rice paddy, looking at something. Approaching them, he asked what it was. A villager told him, ‘We captured a girl who has turned into a demon, and now we are burying her.’ But these stories are all of women; I have never heard one of a man. It is, after all, because of their perverse nature that women turn into shameless demons. Now, as for men, there was a minister of Emperor Yang of Sui named Ma Shumou, who fancied the flesh of small children, whom he would kidnap from the people, steam, and devour;11 but this was shameless barbarity, quite different from the case you have described. Nevertheless, your monk’s turning into a demon must be the result of his actions in a former life. The virtue he accumulated through his earlier ascetic practices is due to his utter sincerity in serving the Buddha, and he would surely have become a splendid priest had he not taken in that boy. It was probably his single-minded nature that caused him to turn into a demon when, once having entered the maze of lust, he was burned by the karmic flames of unenlightenment. He who fails to control his mind becomes a demon; he who governs his mind attains to buddhahood. Your priest is a good example of this. If I, an old monk, can

194 book f ive

instruct the demon and lead him back to his original mind, I shall also be repaying your hospitality tonight.” Thus he set a noble aim. The master of the house pressed his head to the floor mat. “If you can accomplish this, Your Reverence, it will be as though the people of the province had been reborn in the Pure Land,” he said, weeping tears of joy. Lodging in this mountain village, they heard no sound of conch or bell; but they knew that the night was late, because the last-quar- ter moon had risen, spilling its light through a crack in the old door.12 “Well, then, have a good rest,” the master said, and retired to his bedroom.

Since the mountain temple was almost deserted, bram- bles clung to the two-story gate and moss grew on the neglected sutra pavilion. Spiders had spun webs that bound the Buddhist statues together; sparrow droppings covered the goma dais; the abbot’s residence, the covered walkways, and the monks’ quarters were all in terrible disrepair.13 As the sun declined toward the southwest, Zen Master Kaian entered the temple grounds and struck his ringing-staff against the ground. “Please provide lodgings for a traveling monk tonight,” he called, again and again, but there was no response. Finally, from the sleeping quarters, a withered monk emerged, came slowly toward him with uncertain steps, and spoke in a dry, hoarse voice: “Where are you going that would lead you here? For certain reasons, this temple has gone to ruin, as you see, and turned into a wilderness. There is no food, nor am I prepared to offer you lodging. Go quickly to the village.” The Zen Master said, “I have come

l. 6 Pure Land (Jodo): a Buddhist paradise in the west, presided over by the Buddha Amitabha (J. Amida).

l. 7 “no sound of conch or bell”: that is, there was no active Buddhist temple nearby, where a conch or bell might be used to mark the hour, among other functions.

l. 19 “ringing-staff” (shaku[jo]): wooden staff with brass heads, decorated with metal loops that ring when moved. Originally used by itinerant holy men in India to frighten off snakes, it evolved into a ceremonial staff carried by priests.

the blue hood 195

from the province of Mino and am traveling to Michinoku.14 When I passed through the village below, I was drawn by the beauty of this mountain and the streams and came here on an impulse. As the sun is setting, the road to the village would be long and dangerous. Please let me stay for just one night.” The abbot said, “Bad things happen in a wilderness like this. I cannot encourage you to stay, nor will I order you to leave. Do as you please.” He said nothing more. Without another word, Kaian sat near the abbot. Soon the sun went down, and in the darkness of the night he could not make out his surroundings, for no lamps were lit; he could hear only the ripple of a brook nearby. The abbot returned to the sleeping quarters and made no sound thereafter.

The night deepened and the moon rose, its brilliant light reaching every corner. Shortly after midnight, the abbot reemerged from the sleeping quarters and rushed about, looking for something. Unable to find it, he cried, “Where’s that damn monk hiding? He ought to be right here.” He ran past the Zen master several times, but could not see him at all. He appeared to hurry off toward the main hall, but then danced crazily around the courtyard until finally he collapsed, face down, in exhaustion. Dawn came, and the morning sun began to shine. Looking like a man recover- ing from too much wine, he seemed dumbfounded when he saw the Zen master sitting right where he had been sitting before. Leaning silently against a column, the abbot heaved a great sigh but said nothing. Drawing near him, the Zen master said, “Abbot, why are you grieving? If you are hungry, fill your belly with my flesh.”15 The abbot said, “Were you there all night?” The Zen master said, “I was here and did not sleep.” The abbot said, “Shamefully, I have a fondness for human flesh, but I have never tasted the flesh of a living buddha. You truly are a buddha. It is no surprise that, with the dark eyes of a fiend, I could not see the coming of a living

l. 32 “living buddha”: one who has achieved enlightenment in this life.

196 book f ive

buddha, try as I might.16 This is more than I deserve.” Bow- ing his head, he fell silent.

The Zen master said, “Villagers tell me that, once your mind had been distracted by lust, you quickly sank to the level of a fiend. This is an almost unprecedented result of bad karma, and neither ‘shameful’ nor ‘sad’ can describe it. Because you go to the village night after night and hurt peo- ple, no one in the villages nearby can rest easy. I could not ignore this when I heard of it. I have come here especially to instruct you and lead you back to your original mind. Will you listen?” The abbot said, “Truly, you are a buddha. Teach me, please, how I can quickly put these shameful actions out of my mind.” The Zen master said, “If you will listen to me, then, come with me.” Having the abbot sit on a flat stone in front of the veranda, he removed the dark-blue hood from his own head, placed it on the head of the abbot, and taught him two lines from the Song of Enlightenment:17

The moon glows on the river, wind rustles the pines.

Long night, clear evening—what are they for?

Kaian instructed him kindly: “Seek quietly the meaning of these lines without leaving this spot. When you have worked out the meaning, you will probably, without trying, encoun- ter your original buddha-nature.” Then he went down the mountain. Although the villagers escaped great harm there- after, they did not know whether the abbot was alive or dead, and so, in their uncertainty and fear, they forbade anyone to go up the mountain.

One year passed quickly. In the winter of the following year, early in the Tenth Month, Priest of Great Virtue Kaian traveled this way again on his return from the north, stopped at the house of the man who had lodged him for a night, and

l. 23 “buddha-nature”: the potential for perfect enlightenment, inherent in every person.

the blue hood 197

inquired about the abbot. The master of the house welcomed him joyfully: “Thanks to Your Reverence’s great virtue, the demon has not come down the mountain again, and all the people feel as though they had been reborn in the Pure Land. They are, however, terrified of going to the mountain, and so not a single person has climbed it. Therefore, I do not know what has happened to him. But how could he still be alive? While you rest here tonight, may you pray that his spirit achieve buddhahood. All of us will follow you in doing so.” The Zen master said, “If he has passed on as a consequence of his good actions, then he is my teacher, preceding me on the Way. If he is still alive, then he is one of my disciples. In either case, I must see what has become of him.” Going up the mountain again, he could hardly believe that this was the same path he had taken last year, for indeed it appeared that all traffic had ceased. Entering the temple grounds, he found plumed grasses growing thickly, taller than a man; the dew fell on him like a cold autumn shower; and he could not even make out the three paths. The doors of the main hall and the sutra pavilion had toppled to the right and left, and moss grew on rain-dampened cracks in the rotted wood of a walk- way that connected the abbot’s residence with the kitchen.

When he sought out the place near the veranda where he had told the abbot to sit, he found a shadowy man with hair and beard so tangled that one could not tell if he were monk or layman. Weeds coiled about him and plumed grasses swayed above him, and he murmured something almost inaudible in a wispy voice, no louder than the hum of a mosquito:

l. 12 “the Way”: the way to Buddhist enlightenment. l. 19 “three paths”: the proverbial paths in a hermit’s garden: to the gate, to

the well, and to the toilet. This section echoes a passage in the “Yomo- giu” (The Wormwood Patch) chapter of The Tale of Genji: “The gates were coming unhinged and leaning precariously. . . . Even the ‘three paths’ had disappeared in the undergrowth” (Murasaki Shikibu, The Tale of Genji, trans. Edward G. Seidensticker [New York: Knopf, 1976], p. 296).

198 book f ive

“The moon glows on the river, wind rustles the pines.

Long night, clear evening—what are they for?”

Seeing this, the Zen master immediately took a firm hold on his Zen staff, cried “Samosan, what are they for?” and struck him on the head. Instantly, the figure began to fade, like ice meeting the morning sun, until only the blue hood and some bones remained on the leaves of grass. No doubt his long obsession vanished at this moment. Herein lies a venerable truth.

In this way, the great virtue of the Zen master came to be known under the clouds and beyond the seas, and peo- ple celebrated him, saying “The flesh of the First Patriarch has not dried up.” Gathering together, the villagers cleared the temple grounds, repaired the buildings, and chose the Zen master to live at the temple as abbot, whereupon he changed it from its original, esoteric, sect and established a revered Soto site. It is said that the venerable temple still flourishes today.

l. 4 “Samosan”: originally a slang expression in Song-era Chinese, used in the Zen sect to mean something like “Well, how about it?”

l. 9 “venerable truth”: the truth of Buddhist teachings. l. 11 “under the clouds”: that is, in distant lands. l. 13 “has not dried up”: that is, the spirit or teachings of Bodhidharma lived

on in Kaian.

the blue hood 199

N O T E S

1. On this subject, see, for example, Bernard Faure, The Red Thread:

Buddhist Approaches to Sexuality (Princeton, N.J.: Princeton Univer-

sity Press, 1998).

2. Robert Ford Campany, Strange Writing: Anomaly Accounts in Early

Medieval China, SUNY Series in Chinese Philosophy and Culture

(Albany: State University of New York Press, 1996), pp. 324–328.

3. Hiroshi Chatani, trans., “The Pot at Kibitsu” and “The Blue Hood”

(available at: http://www.kcc.zaq.ne.jp/dfeea307/); Kengi Hamada,

trans., “Demon,” in Tales of Moonlight and Rain: Japanese Gothic

Tales (Tokyo: University of Tokyo Press, 1971; New York: Columbia

University Press, 1972), pp. 123–135; Alf Hansey, trans., “The Blue

Hood,” The Young East 2, no. 9 (1927): 314–319; Donald Richie, “The

Ghoul-Priest: A Commentary,” in Zen Inklings: Some Stories, Fables,

Parables, Sermons, and Prints (New York: Weatherhill, 1982), pp. 79–

90; Takamasa Sasaki, trans., Ueda Akinari’s Tales of a Rain’d Moon

(Tokyo: Hokuseido, 1981); Dale Saunders, trans., “Ugetsu Monoga-

tari, or Tales of Moonlight and Rain,” Monumenta Nipponica 21, nos.

1–2 (1966): 196–202; William F. Sibley, trans., “The Blue Cowl,”

in Stephen D. Miller, ed., Partings at Dawn: An Anthology of Japa-

nese Gay Literature (San Francisco: Gay Sunshine Press, 1996), pp.

125–133; Makoto Ueda, trans., “A Blue Hood,” San Francisco Review 1,

no. 4 (1960): 42–47; Leon M. Zolbrod, trans. and ed., Ugetsu Mono-

gatari: Tales of Moonlight and Rain: A Complete English Version of the

Eighteenth-Century Japanese Collection of Tales of the Supernatural

(Vancouver: University of British Columbia Press, 1974), pp. 185–194.

4. “summer retreat”: Buddhist monks traditionally stay inside their

monasteries for three months during the rainy season. In Japan,

the period of confinement was from the sixteenth day of the Fourth

Month to the fifteenth day of the Seventh Month of the old calendar,

in which the Fourth, Fifth, and Sixth Months were summer.

5. The situation that follows—a village householder conversing with a

traveling monk who ultimately saves the day—was apparently inspired

by chapter 5 of Shi Nai’an and Luo Guanzhong, Water Margin.

6. The temple is Daichuji. 7. Koshi refers to the former provinces of Echigo, Sado, Etchu, Kaga,

Noto, Echizen, and Wakasa (prefectures of Niigata, Toyama, Ishi-

kawa, and Fukui), on the coast of the Sea of Japan.

200 book f ive

8. The examples that follow are drawn, with some garbling, from book

5 of Xie Zhaozhe, Wuzazu (Five Miscellanies, 1618).

9. King Zhuang (r. 613–591 B.C.E.) ruled the ancient Chinese state of

Chu.

10. Nothing is known of Wang Han or Wu Sheng.

11. Emperor Yang succeeded to the throne of Sui in 605 by murdering

his father and reigned until his own assassination in 618. Ma Shu-

mou is said to have progressed from lamb meat, which he began

eating to treat a rare illness, to human flesh.

12. In the lunar calendar, the moon reaches its last quarter on the twenty-

first day of the month and rises at about midnight.

13. The description suggests a fairly large monastic complex and seems

to have been inspired by the first part of chapter 6 of Shi and Luo,

Water Margin.

“sutra pavilion”: a repository for sacred texts.

The Buddhist statues would be in the main hall of the temple.

“goma dais”: characteristic of Shingon temples, is used in the

goma ritual, in which a priest chants spells and incantations while

burning poppy seeds and slips of wood on a dais, to symbolize the

flames of wisdom extinguishing bad karma.

14. Michinoku was a province in northeastern Honshu, corresponding to the modern prefectures of Aomori, Iwate, Miyagi, and Fukushima.

15. There is a precedent for Kaian’s offer in story 5:7 in the late-Heian

setsuwa collection Konjaku monogatari shu (Tales of Times Now Past, ca. 1120), which tells of the Buddha’s giving his own flesh to save a

starving couple.

16. “dark eyes of a fiend” (kichiku, literally, “hungry-ghost beast”): in Japa-

nese Buddhism, hungry ghosts (gaki), whose bad karma condemned

them always to be famished, and beasts (chikusho) occupied two of the Six Realms (rokudo) into which humans were reborn. Their eyes are “dark” because they cannot discern the truth of the Buddha’s

teachings.

17. The Song of Enlightenment (Zhengdaoge), by Yongjia Xuanjue (665–

713), a disciple of the founder of the Soto school of Zen, expresses essential Zen teachings in 166 lines of poetry. Quoted here are lines

103 and 104.

the blue hood 201

t itle

The title, “Hinpukuron,” refers to the discussion, in the story, between a wealthy samurai and the spirit of gold.

characters

There are only two characters in “On Poverty and Wealth”: Oka, or Okano, Sanai (late sixteenth century), a samurai in the service of the Gamo and Uesugi clans, and the spirit of gold.

place

“On Poverty and Wealth” is set at the home of Oka Sanai, in Mutsu, which refers to the northeastern part of the island of Honshu. Sanai’s master, Gamo Ujisato, was based in Aizu Province (Fukushima Prefecture).

BOOK FIVE

ON POVERTY AND WEALTH

t ime

An autumn night in 1593, 1594, or 1595 (after the birth of Toyotomi Hideyori and before the death of Gamo Ujisato), during the hegemony of Toyotomi Hideyoshi.

background

Sanai’s master, Gamo Ujisato (1556–1595), was a warlord in the service of Oda Nobunaga (1534–1582) and Hideyoshi (for more on Hideyoshi, see the introduction to “The Owl of the Three Jewels”).

Many samurai of the time pursued elegant hobbies such as tea ceremony, incense sampling, and no drama. Several sources confirm Sanai’s interest in money, a remarkable pre- occupation for members of his class, since samurai ideals disdained moneymaking.

The late-sixteenth-century warlords Nobunaga, Takeda Shingen, Uesugi Kenshin, and Hideyoshi, as well as Hide- yoshi’s baby son Hideyori (1593–1615), are mentioned toward the end of “On Poverty and Wealth.” They contrast with Tokugawa Ieyasu (1542–1616), the founder of the shogunate that followed Hideyoshi’s hegemony and under whose rule Akinari lived.

aff init ies

“On Poverty and Wealth” draws from or alludes to several Chinese works: the Lun yü (Analects, fifth century B.C.E.?) of Confucius; Zhong yong (The Doctrine of the Mean, fifth century B.C.E.?), one of the classics of the Confucian canon; the Mengzi (Mencius, third century B.C.E.?); Xie Zhaozhe’s Wuzazu (Five Miscellanies, 1618); “Biographies of the Money- makers,” part of Sima Qian’s Shiji (Records of the Grand

on poverty and wealth 203

Historian, early second–late first centuries B.C.E.); and Qu You’s Jiandeng xinhua (New Tales After Trimming the Lamp, 1378). It is also indebted to Japanese historical sources that mention Sanai.

I n Mutsu lived a s service of Gamo Ujisato. Highly paid and much hon- ored for his martial prowess, he was known for his bravery everywhere east of the barrier. Sanai was a most eccentric warrior. His desire for riches and honor far exceeded that of the ordinary samurai. Because he ruled his house on the principle of frugality, his wealth increased as the years piled up. Furthermore, when he rested from military train- ing, he would take pleasure not in savoring tea or playing with incense, but in lining up a great many gold coins on the floor of a room—a pastime he savored even more than others might enjoy the moon and the blossoms.1 Everyone considered Sanai’s behavior strange and dismissed him con- temptuously as a miserly boor.

Hearing that a groom, long employed in his household, secretly carried a gold piece with him, Sanai summoned the man and said, “Even a disk of jade from the Kunlun Moun- tains is, in troubled times, no better than a tile or a pebble. One who has been born into this age and wields a bow and arrow prizes, above all, a sword from Tangxi or Moyang and, next, prizes wealth. Even with the best sword, however, one

l. 8 “east of the barrier”: that is, east of the Hakone Barrier, referring to what is now the Tokyo region and the northeast.

l. 21 Kunlun Mountains: in western China, noted as a source of precious stones.

l. 23 “wields a bow and arrow”: is a samurai. l. 24 Tangxi and Moyang: noted in ancient China for the production of excel-

lent swords.

204 book f ive

Image has been suppressed

cannot fight off a thousand enemies; but the virtue of gold will sway all the people of the world. A samurai must not use it recklessly. He should store it away carefully. It is wonder- fully rash of you to have gained wealth beyond your lowly status. I must reward you.” He gave the man ten ryo in gold, allowed him to wear a sword, and took him into his service.2 When people heard about this, they heaped praise on Sanai, saying, “Sanai does not accumulate gold out of insatiable greed. He is simply the most eccentric samurai of the day.”

That night, Sanai heard the sound of someone at his pil- low. When he opened his eyes, he saw a tiny old man, smiling as he sat near the lamp stand. Sanai raised his head from the pillow and said, “Who are you? If you were here to borrow provisions, you would have brought some brawny fellows with you. Taking the form of a dotard like you and coming to wake me up must be the prank of some fox or raccoon-dog.3 What tricks do you know? Show me a little something, to drive away the sleepiness on this autumn night.” He showed no sign of being agitated. The old man said, “This is neither a goblin nor a man who has come to you tonight. I am the spirit of the gold that you care for so well. In my joy at hav- ing being warmly received all these years, I have presumed to come for a nighttime chat. Deeply moved by the way you rewarded your servant today, I felt that I could not rest until I told you what is in my heart, and so I have appeared tem- porarily in this form. What I have to say is only idle talk, not worth one part in ten, but if I do not speak, my belly will be overfull.4 This is why I have come to interrupt your sleep.

“Now, then, wealth without pride is the way of the great sage.5 We hear insults, such as ‘The rich are always perverse’ and ‘Most rich men are fools,’ but these apply only to wild dogs, wolves, snakes, and scorpions like Shi Chong of Jin and Wang Yuanbao of Tang.6 The rich of ancient times derived their wealth naturally, from measuring heavenly time and closely observing the benefits of the land.7 When Lü Wang was enfeoffed in Qi, he taught the people how to make a

on poverty and wealth 205

living, and so others came to his state from the seaside, hop- ing for profit.8 Guan Zhong assembled the princes nine times, but, although his status was only that of a minister, his wealth was greater than that of the lords of all the states.9 Fan Li, Zigong, and Bo Gui profited from selling produce and accumulated vast amounts of gold.10 Since Sima Qian included these men in his ‘Biographies of the Money-mak- ers,’11 later scholars vied with one another to condemn his views as vulgar, but theirs were the words of men who lacked deep understanding. ‘Without a constant livelihood, there will be no constant heart.’12 Farmers work to produce grain, artisans work to assist them, and merchants work to dis-

206 book f ive

Image has been suppressed

tribute their production: each manages his own livelihood, enriches his family, venerates his ancestors, and plans for his posterity—what else is there for a person to do? As the proverbs say, ‘A millionaire’s son will not die in the city,’ and ‘The wealthy man’s pleasures are the same as the king’s.’13 If the pool is deep, the fish will swim freely; if the moun- tains are vast, the animals will grow up strong—truly, this principle follows the natural course of heaven.14 ‘Poor and yet happy’15—these words have been a source of confusion for men who study letters and search for rhymes; and for-

“ Sanai raised his

head from the

pillow and said,

‘Who are you?’”

l. 10 “men who study letters and search for rhymes”: scholars and writers.

on poverty and wealth 207

Image has been suppressed

getting that wealth is the foundation of the state, even war- riors, with their bows and arrows, train in senseless tactics, smash things, kill people, lose their own virtue, and let their progeny die out—all because, in their confusion, they belittle wealth and prize fame. If you think about it, the desire is the same, whether for fame or for wealth. When people get caught up in words and belittle the virtue of gold, they pro- claim themselves immaculate and say that a man is wise who wields a spade and abandons society. Such a man may be wise, but such behavior is not wise. Gold is first among the Seven Rarities. When buried in the earth, gold causes magi- cal springs to spill forth, eliminates filth, and harbors a mys- terious sound. Can it be that a thing of such purity gathers only in the homes of the foolish, ignorant, greedy, and cruel? It cannot be. I am overjoyed that tonight I have been able to vent my resentment and dispel the gloom of many years.”

Sanai moved forward, intrigued: “You have said that the way of wealth is noble, and this does not differ in the slight- est from what I have always thought. Although my question is foolish, I hope that you will give me a detailed answer. The principle you have just elucidated is that one makes a terrible mistake to underestimate the virtue of gold and to be unaware that wealth is a great endeavor; and yet what the bookworms say is not without reason. Eight of ten rich men in the world today are greedy and cruel. Although they are satisfied with their own stipends, they do nothing to help the poor, including even brothers, relatives, and people who have served their families for generations; when their long- time neighbors lose their strength, have nowhere to turn for help, and decline in the world, the rich will beat down the price of the neighbors’ paddies and fields and take the land as their own; even when they have risen to the esteemed position of village head, they will not return the things they

l. 11 Seven Rarities: the Seven Rarities of Buddhist texts are gold, silver, lapis lazuli, crystal, coral, agate, and clamshell.

208 book f ive

have borrowed in the past;16 if a courteous man yields his seat to them, they will despise him as though he were a ser- vant; if an old friend calls to offer greetings of the season, they will suspect him of coming to borrow something and let it be known that they are not at home. I have seen many of this sort. There are also people who are utterly loyal to their lords and are known for the purity of their devotion to their parents, who respect their superiors and aid the wretched; and yet they struggle through the three months of winter with only a single woolen garment, and the heat of summer with no chance to wash their single linen robe, and even in a bountiful year they fill their stomachs, morning and evening, with a single bowl of gruel; such people, of course, are never visited by their friends and are shut out by their relatives; but they have no way to express their sadness at being cut off from others, and they live out their lives in drudgery.17 Is this because they neglect their livelihoods? Rising early, retiring late, they devote all their energy to their work and have no time to pause as they rush frantically east and west—these people are not stupid, but it is rare that the application of their talents leads to success. They do not even know the taste of Master Yan’s single gourd.18 A Buddhist will explain this outcome in terms of actions in former lives; a Confucian will tell you about the Will of Heaven. If there is a future, then hidden virtues and meritorious actions hold promise for the next life, and, in anticipation of this, people will sus- pend their anger for a time.19 Can we say, then, that only Buddhism fully accounts for the nature of the Way of wealth, and that Confucian teachings on the subject are incoherent? You seem to adhere to Buddhist teachings. If I am mistaken, please explain your thoughts to me in detail.”

The old man said, “The point of your question has been discussed since ancient times, but has never been resolved. If we listen to Buddhist teachings, we hear that wealth and poverty result from good and bad actions in former lives. This is nothing more than wishful thinking. When a man

on poverty and wealth 209

who, in a former life, has cultivated himself, striven to be compassionate, and dealt kindheartedly even with strangers is, as a result, reborn into a rich family, struts before strang- ers on the strength of his fortune, abuses others with out- rageous nonsense, and reveals the base heart of a barbar- ian—then we have to ask what kind of result it is when the compassionate heart of a former life falls so low in this life.20 I have heard that the buddhas and bodhisattvas abhor fame and greed; why, then, are they so obsessed with poverty and wealth? The explanation that wealth comes as the result of good actions in a former life, and poverty as the result of bad- ness, is pseudo-Buddhism propagated for the deception of ignorant old wives and girls. A man might not benefit him- self who concentrates on doing good deeds without regard for poverty and wealth, but his descendants will surely be favored with good fortune. ‘His ancestral temple received these; his descendants preserved these’ subtly expresses this truth.21 It is not a sincere heart that does good and then waits to be rewarded for it. I have my own view regarding covetous men who do bad things and not only grow rich, but also live long, fulfilling lives. Please listen to a little more of what I have to say.

“I have taken this temporary form to speak with you, but I am neither a god nor a buddha: I have no feelings, and so my thinking is different from that of humans. The rich of ancient times became wealthy by managing their affairs in conformance with heavenly time and their observations of the benefits of the land. Since this strategy followed the natural course of heaven, it also followed the natural course of heaven that wealth gathered around these people. Also, when a base, stingy, cruel man, seeing gold and silver, treats us as warmly as he treats his own parents, stops eating what he should eat, stops wearing what he should wear, and even

l. 9 “obsessed with poverty and wealth”: in other words, “Why do they spend so much time and effort trying to explain poverty and wealth?”

210 book f ive

risks his precious life as he thinks of gold and silver con- stantly, whether awake or asleep, then it is perfectly obvious that gold and silver will gather around him. I am neither a god nor a buddha, simply a thing without feelings. As such, I have no reason to weigh the good and bad in people and act accordingly. It is heaven, the gods, and the buddhas who praise goodness and punish badness. These three provide Ways. We are no match for them. Nevertheless, you must understand that we will gather around a man when he fawns over us. In this respect, gold differs from the human heart, even though it has a spirit. Further, a man may grow rich and sow the seeds of good karma, but if he is generous for no reason, or lends money to someone without perceiving that he is dishonorable, then his fortune will surely dissipate despite his good deeds. This is because a man like that treats gold lightly, knowing how to use it but not knowing its vir- tue. Also, a man who suffers in narrow circumstances, even though he conducts himself well and is sincere to others, will never attain wealth in his lifetime, no matter how much he taxes his spirit, because he was born with few of the bless- ings of nature. It is precisely for this reason that a wise man of old escaped from society to the wooded hills, where he lived out his years in peace just as he wanted to do, seeking wealth when the search was fruitful, and not seeking when the search was not fruitful.22 It makes one envious to think how clean and fresh his heart must have been.23 Nonethe- less, the Way of wealth is an art—the skillful will accumu- late much; the foolish will crumble more easily than tiles. Furthermore, we follow men’s livelihoods and depend on no master in particular.24 No sooner have we gathered here than we might run over there, depending on the master’s actions.

l. 7 “These three provide Ways”: heaven (ten) refers to the Chinese cosmol- ogy adapted by Japan, especially as expressed in Confucianism; gods (kami), to Shinto; and the buddhas (hotoke), to Buddhism.

l. 8 Ways (do, michi): teachings, values, and principles marking a path that people should follow through life.

on poverty and wealth 211

We are like water flowing to the lowest spot. Day and night, we come and go with no time to rest. An idle man with no livelihood, however, will finally deplete even a Mount Tai of food and drink up the rivers and oceans. As I said before, the unrighteous man’s accumulation of wealth has noth- ing to do with virtue or its lack; and the case of the upright man need not be discussed.25 If a man who is blessed by the trends of the times will exercise frugality, curtail expenses, and work hard, his house will naturally grow rich and oth- ers will surely bow to him. I know nothing of the Buddhists’ karma in a former life, nor do I concern myself with the Confucianists’ Mandate of Heaven.26 I roam freely in a dif- ferent realm.”

Sanai was more and more intrigued: “Your theory is mar- velous. My long-held doubts have been dispelled tonight. Let me try asking you one more thing. The powerful winds of the Toyotomi have forced all within the four seas into sub- mission, and the five home provinces and seven highways seem finally to be calm;27 but samurai loyal to vanquished domains are plotting to achieve their long-cherished desires, lurking here and there in hiding, or serving masters of great domains for the time being as they await upheavals in the world.28 The people, too, being people of a country at war, drop their plows, exchange them for halberds, and neglect their crops. Samurai cannot sleep on high pillows. In this sit- uation, surely the regime cannot last much longer. Who will unite the country and bring respite to the people? And with whom will you ally yourself?” The old man said, “Since this, too, is of the world of men, I do not know. But speaking from the perspective of wealth: Shingen’s schemes were on target every time, and yet during his life he wielded power in only

l. 3 Mount Tai: in eastern China, used here as a metaphor for a vast amount. l. 25 “sleep on high pillows”: that is, sleeping without any worries. The expres-

sion appears in Sima Qian, Records of the Grand Historian.

212 book f ive

three domains.29 Moreover, he was universally praised as a masterful commander. They say that his last words were, ‘Of all the generals today, Nobunaga’s karmic rewards are unsur- passed. Underestimating him for all these years, I failed to bring him down, and now I have taken ill. No doubt my pos- terity will soon be destroyed by him.’ Kenshin was a brave commander.30 There was no one to rival him after Shingen died. Unfortunately, he died early. Nobunaga surpassed the others in his capacities, but in wisdom was no match for Shingen, and in courage was inferior to Kenshin. Neverthe- less, he acquired wealth and was entrusted with control of the whole country.31 Since he lost his life for humiliating a vassal, however, he cannot be said to have combined both let- ters and the martial arts.32 Although Hideyoshi’s ambitions are great, they did not encompass the world at first. We know this from the way he crafted the name ‘Hashiba,’ out of envy for the wealth of Shibata and Niwa.33 Now he has turned into a dragon, rising to the skies; but has he not forgotten what life was like in the pond? Hideyoshi may have turned into a dragon, but in fact he is no more than a water snake.34 It is said that a water snake that turns into a dragon lives for only three years.35 Hideyoshi’s descendants will not last long, will they?36 The world has never seen a realm endure that was governed with arrogance and extravagance.37 What people must cherish is frugality, but those who carry it too far degenerate into meanness. One must strive, therefore, carefully to maintain the distinction between frugality and meanness. The rule of the Toyotomi may not last much lon- ger, but the time cannot be far off when the people will pros- per in peace, and every house will sing Music of a Thousand Autumns.38 In answer to your question, let me offer this.” He intoned an eight-character verse:

l. 18 “but has he not forgotten what life was like in the pond”: that is, in his present ascendancy, he has forgotten his humble origins.

on poverty and wealth 213

“The ming-grass of Yao will grow, the sun will shine high in

the sky;

and the one hundred families will return to the house.”39

As they reached the end of their diverting conversation, the bell of a distant temple signaled the fifth watch. “The night is coming to an end. I must take my leave. I fear that my long tale has disturbed your rest tonight.” The old man seemed about to stand and depart, when suddenly he van- ished without a trace.

Sanai thought back on what had occurred during the night and considered the verse. When he grasped the sense of the phrase “the one hundred families will return to the house,” he came firmly to believe in what the old man had said. Truly, these were auspicious words for an age of auspi- cious grasses.40

l. 5 “fifth watch”: the time between sunset and sunrise was divided into five equal watches of about two hours each. The fifth watch corresponded roughly to the period from 4:00 A.M. until daybreak.

214 book f ive

N O T E S

1. The moon stands for the natural beauty of autumn, and blossoms for

the beauty of spring and, by extension, poetry, painting, and other arts.

2. In the 1590s, ten ryo would buy from three to six koku (150 to 300 bushels) of rice. By allowing the man to wear a sword, Sanai raised

him to the status of samurai.

3. Foxes and raccoon-dogs (tanuki) were thought to have the power to

assume human form and play tricks on people.

4. “if I do not speak, my belly will be overfull”: apparently a proverb, but

its provenance has not been identified.

5. The “great sage” is Confucius. The spirit is referring to Analects 1:15:

“Tsze-kung said, ‘What do you pronounce concerning the poor man

who yet does not flatter, and the rich man who is not proud?’ The Mas-

ter replied, ‘They will do; but they are not equal to him, who though

poor, is yet cheerful, and to him, who, though rich, loves the rules of

propriety’” (James Legge, trans., The Four Books: Confucian Analects,

The Great Learning, The Doctrine of the Mean, and The Works of Mencius

[1879, 1923; reprint, New York: Paragon, 1966], pp. 10–11).

6. “wild dogs . . . and Wang Yuanbao of Tang”: emblems of greed and

cruelty, from book 5 of Xie Zhaozhe, Five Miscellanies. Much in the

following section was probably drawn from this source. Shi Chong

(d. 300) was a famously rich man during the Jin dynasty (265–419),

and Wang Yuanbao of the Tang dynasty (618–906) was said to have

constructed walls of his house by piling up gold and silver. Toyotomi

Hideyoshi, who built a teahouse of gold, might be an implied target

of the spirit’s criticism.

7. “heavenly time”: refers to climate, the seasons, day and night, and

other cyclical phenomena.

“benefits of the land”: refers to topography, soil conditions, and

other terrestrial phenomena.

The phrases come from Mencius: “Heavenly time is less impor-

tant than the benefits of the land, and the benefits of the land are less

important than harmony among men” (2.2.1).

8. Lü Wang refers to Grand Duke Wang Lüshang, the first ruler of Qi

in the early Zhou dynasty (eleventh century–770 B.C.E.). This account

was derived from the Shiji (Ssu-ma Ch’ien [Sima Qian], Records of the

Grand Historian of China, trans. Burton Watson [New York: Columbia

University Press, 1961], vol. 2, p. 478).

on poverty and wealth 215

9. Guan Zhong was prime minister under Duke Huan (685–643 B.C.E.)

of Qi. Akinari apparently misread the Shiji: “assembled . . . nine times”

should be simply “assembled” (Ssu-ma Ch’ien, Records of the Grand His-

torian, vol. 2, pp. 478–479). According to Confucius, “That Duke Huan

was able to convene the rulers of all the States without resorting to the

use of his war-chariots was due to Kuan Chung” (The Analects, trans.

Arthur Waley [London: George Allen & Unwin, 1938], 14:17, p. 185).

10. Fan Li, a minister in the state of Chu (Spring and Autumn period,

722–481 B.C.E.), made several fortunes as he traveled from state to

state; Zigong was one of the favorite disciples of Confucius; and

Bo Gui was a merchant at the time of Marquis Wen of Wei (Zhou

dynasty, 424–387 B.C.E.).

11. “Biographies of the Money-makers” is a section in Sima Qian, Records

of the Grand Historian.

12. The spirit is quoting from Mencius 1.1.

13. Both proverbs are from “Biographies of the Money-makers” in Sima

Qian, Records of the Grand Historian.

“die in the city”: in ancient China, a euphemism for being exe-

cuted and having one’s corpse displayed in the city.

14. These aphorisms, too, are from “Biographies of the Money-makers.”

“follows the natural course of heaven”: that is, is in accordance

with the laws of nature.

15. The spirit is referring to Confucius, Analects 1:15 (see note 5).

16. “longtime neighbors . . . borrowed in the past”: examples from a

story in Qu You, New Tales After Trimming the Lamp.

17. “a single woolen garment . . . drudgery”: a sentence adapted from the

same story in New Tales After Trimming the Lamp.

18. Master Yan was Confucius’s favorite disciple, Yan Hui or Yan Yuan.

Sanai is alluding to Confucius, Analects 6:9: “The Master said, ‘Admi-

rable indeed was the virtue of Hui! With a single bamboo dish of rice,

a single gourd dish of drink, and living in his mean narrow lane,

while others could not have endured the distress, he did not allow

his joy to be affected by it. Admirable indeed was the virtue of Hui!’”

(Legge, trans., Four Books, p. 69).

19. In Buddhism, actions in previous lives have consequences in this life,

and actions in this life will affect the next. The idea here is that virtue

and good behavior in this life will be rewarded in the next.

“hidden virtues”: good qualities that are unknown to others. It

was considered tasteful to keep quiet about one’s virtues and good

216 book f ive

deeds. See, for example, Confucius, Analects 5:25: “Yan Yuan said, ‘I

should like not to boast of my excellence, nor to make a display of my

meritorious deeds’” (Legge, trans., Four Books, pp. 61–62).

20. Underlying this question is the Buddhist principle of cause and

effect, or action (karma) and result (phala). The spirit questions the

principle by raising the example of a man whose goodness results in

wealth and baseness in the next life.

21. The spirit is quoting from chapter 17 of The Doctrine of the Mean:

“How greatly filial was Shun! His virtue was that of a sage; his dig-

nity was the throne; his riches were all within the four seas. His

ancestral temple received these; his descendants preserved these. There-

fore having such great virtue, it could not but be that he should

obtain the throne, that he should obtain those riches, that he should

obtain his fame, that he should attain to his long life” (Legge, trans.,

Four Books, pp. 372–373; italicized sentence, my translation, adapted

from Legge). Shun was one of the legendary sage-kings of ancient

China. The idea is that Shun’s ancestors and descendants benefited

from his virtue: his ancestors, from receiving the filial king’s venera-

tion; and his descendants, from preserving his throne, riches, fame,

and longevity.

22. The spirit is alluding to Confucius, Analects 7:11: “The Master said, ‘If

the search for riches is sure to be successful, though I should become

a groom with whip in hand to get them, I will do so. As the search

may not be successful, I will follow after that which I love’” (Legge,

trans., Four Books, p. 83).

23. An allusion to a poem by Fujiwara Kinto (966–1041), sent to a friend who had taken Buddhist vows and gone to live in Omi:

Ripples in the breeze on Shiga Bay—

how clean and fresh your heart must be. (Shuishu, no. 1336)

24. “Nonetheless . . . particular”: paraphrases from “Biographies of the

Money-makers” (Ssu-ma Ch’ien, Records of the Grand Historian, vol.

2, p. 499).

25. The original sentence, the most obscure in the book, has been vari-

ously interpreted. The thrust of the second part could be that (a) the

case of an upright man who has accumulated wealth is so different

from that of the unrighteous man that it should not be discussed in

the same context; (b) there is nothing to discuss, since an upright man

does only good; or (c) an upright man should not discuss such things.

on poverty and wealth 217

26. It was the Confucian philosopher Mencius who most clearly enun-

ciated the concept that the people have the right to depose a ruler

whose corruption has caused him to lose the Mandate of Heaven.

27. The Toyotomi refers to Toyotomi Hideyoshi and his son Hideyori.

Hideyoshi completed the unification of Japan in 1590.

“within the four seas” (a phrase from the Analects) and “five

home provinces and seven highways”: that is, all of Japan. The five

home provinces were those of the capital and the surrounding region

(Yamashiro, Yamato, Kawachi, Izumi, and Settsu, corresponding to

all or part of the prefectures of Kyoto, Nara, Osaka, and Hyogo), and the seven highways linked the capital with the rest of the country.

28. The cherished desire of the loyal samurai was to reinstate their mas-

ters, who had been vanquished by Oda Nobunaga and Hideyoshi.

29. Takeda Shingen (1521–1573), who controlled the three domains of

Kai, Shinano, and Echigo (prefectures of Yamanashi, Nagano, and

Niigata), died of illness while laying siege to Nobunaga’s forces.

30. Uesugi Kenshin (1530–1578), a warlord based in Echigo (Niigata Pre-

fecture), was a rival of Shigen and Nobunaga.

31. That is, his hegemony over the country was recognized by the

emperor.

32. The vassal was Akechi Mitsuhide (1528–1582), who turned on Nobu-

naga and forced him to commit suicide. The mastery of both letters

and martial arts was a samurai ideal.

33. In 1572, Hideyoshi, whose surname had been Kinoshita, took the

name Hashiba, which consists of one character each from the sur-

names of Niwa Nagahide (1535–1585) and Shibata Katsuie (1522–

1583). Both Niwa and Shibata were vassals of Nobunaga. Hideyoshi

later defeated Shibata in battle and took Niwa as a vassal.

34. “water snake” (koshin or mizuchi): a mythical, water-dwelling creature thought to have horns and four legs and to emit poisonous breath.

35. This is reported in book 9 of Xie Zhaozhe, Five Miscellanies.

36. The Toyotomi clan came to an end in 1615 with the death of Hideyori.

37. This echoes the famous lines in the opening of Heike monogatari

(The Tale of the Heike, mid-thirteenth century): “The arrogant do not

endure; they are like a dream of a night in spring.”

38. Music of a Thousand Autumns (Senshuraku) is a piece of ancient court music (gagaku) originally intended as a wish for a long reign. Here

the idea is that the people would sing it in celebration of their new-

found peace and prosperity.

218 book f ive

39. The lines of the poem are in Chinese.

“ming-grass”: auspicious ming-grass was said to grow during the

reign of the legendary sage-king Yao (with Shun, one of the rulers

held up as ideals by Confucius). According to legend, ming-grass put

out a new leaf each day for the first fifteen days of each month, and

then lost one leaf a day for the rest of the month.

“one hundred families” (hyakusei): that is, all the people, espe-

cially the farmers.

“return” (ki or kaeru): suggests “allegiance” (kifuku).

“house” (ie): alludes to Tokugawa Ieyasu.

The verse, then, is both the spirit’s prediction that Ieyasu would

prevail when Hideyoshi’s rule ended and, in the context of Akinari’s

times, a paean to the Tokugawa regime and an expression of alle-

giance to it.

40. “auspicious grasses”: refers to the auspicious ming-grass of the spir-

it’s verse. The implication is that the Tokugawa rulers were as sage

and upright as Yao of ancient China.

on poverty and wealth 219

T E X T S A N D C O M M E N T A R I E S

Nakamura Yukihiko, ed. Ueda Akinari shu. Nihon koten bungaku tai- kei, vol. 56. Tokyo: Iwanami, 1968.

Nakamura Yukihiko, Takada Mamoru, and Nakamura Hiroyasu, eds. Hanabusa soshi, Nishiyama monogatari, Ugetsu monogatari, Haru- same monogatari. Nihon koten bungaku zenshu, vol. 48. Tokyo: Shogakukan, 1973.

Suzuki Tanjiro. Ugetsu monogatari honbun oyobi sosakuin. Tokyo: Musashino Shoin, 1990.

Uzuki Hiroshi. Ugetsu monogatari hyoshaku. Nihon koten hyoshaku zenchushaku sosho. Tokyo: Kadokawa, 1969.

S E C O N D A R Y M A T E R I A L S I N J A P A N E S E

Bando Takeo. Ueda Akinari “Ugetsu monogatari” ron. Osaka: Izumi Shoin, 1999.

Inoue Yasushi. Ugetsu monogatari ron—gensen to shudai. Tokyo: Kasama Shoin, 1999.

Konoe Noriko, ed. Akinari kenkyu shiryo shusei. 12 vols. Tokyo: Kuresu Shuppan, 2003.

Matsuda Osamu. “‘Kikka no chigiri’ no ron: Ugetsu monogatari no saihyoka (2).” Bungei to shiso 28 (February 1963).

BIBLIOGRAPHY

222 bibl iography

Mishima Yukio. “Ugetsu monogatari ni tsuite.” In Mishima Yukio zenshu, vol. 25, pp. 270–274. Tokyo: Shinchosha, 1975.

Morita Kiro. Ueda Akinari bungei no kenkyu. Osaka: Izumi Shoin, 2003. Murasaki Shikibu. Genji monogatari. Edited by Yamagishi Tokuhei.

Nihon koten bungaku taikei, vols. 14–18. Tokyo: Iwanami, 1958– 1963.

Nihon Bungaku Kenkyu Shiryo Hankokai, ed. Akinari. Tokyo: Yuse- ido, 1972.

Owa Yasuhiro. Ueda Akinari: Sono ikikata to bungaku. Tokyo: Shun- jusha, 1982.

Tanizaki Jun’ichiro. Bunsho tokuhon. In Tanizaki Jun’ichiro zenshu, vol. 21, pp. 87–246. Tokyo: Chuo Koronsha, 1974.

S E C O N D A R Y M A T E R I A L S I N E N G L I S H

Addiss, Stephen, ed. Japanese Ghosts and Demons: Art of the Supernat- ural. New York: Braziller, in association with the Spencer Museum of Art, University of Kansas, 1985.

Araki, James T. “A Critical Approach to the Ugetsu Monogatari.” Mon- umenta Nipponica 22, nos. 1–2 (1967): 49–64.

Asai Ryoi. The Peony Lantern: “Botan no toro” from Otogi boko (1666). Translated by Maryellen Toman Mori. An Episodic Festschrift for Howard Hibbett, vol. 3. Hollywood, Calif.: Highmoonoon, 2000.

Aston, W. G., trans. Nihongi: Chronicles of Japan from the Earliest Times to A.D. 697. 1896. Reprint, Rutland, Vt.: Tuttle, 1972.

Bishop, John Lyman, trans. “Fan Chü-ch’ing’s Eternal Friendship.” In The Colloquial Short Story in China: A Study of the San-Yen Col- lections, pp. 88–102. Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 1956. [An English translation of the Chinese story from which “The Chrysanthemum Vow” was adapted]

Brooke-Rose, Christine. A Rhetoric of the Unreal: Studies in Narrative and Structure, Especially of the Fantastic. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1981.

Brower, Robert H., and Earl Miner. Japanese Court Poetry. Stanford, Calif.: Stanford University Press, 1961.

Campany, Robert Ford. Strange Writing: Anomaly Accounts in Early Medieval China. SUNY Series in Chinese Philosophy and Culture. Albany: State University of New York Press, 1996.

bibl iography 223

Cheung, Dominic. “With You a Part of Me: A Study of New Tales of the Trimmed Lamp, Tales of Moonlight and Rain, New Tales of the Golden Carp, and the ‘Ghost-Wife’ Theme in China, Japan, and Korea.” In Makoto Ueda, ed., Explorations: Essays in Comparative Literature, pp. 148–173. Lanham, Md.: University Press of America, 1986.

Confucius. The Analects. Translated by Arthur Waley. London: George Allen & Unwin, 1938.

Confucius. The Analects. Translated by D. C. Lau. London: Penguin, 1979.

Faure, Bernard. The Red Thread: Buddhist Approaches to Sexuality. Princeton, N.J.: Princeton University Press, 1998.

Feng Meng-Lung, ed. Stories from a Ming Collection: Translations of Chinese Short Stories Published in the Seventeenth Century. Trans- lated by Cyril Birch. New York: Grove, 1958.

Fessler, Susanna. “The Nature of the Kami: Ueda Akinari and Tandai Shoshin Roku.” Monumenta Nipponica 51, no. 1 (1996): 1–15.

Gerstle, C. Andrew, ed. 18th Century Japan: Culture and Society. Syd- ney: Allen & Unwin, 1989.

Graham, Patricia J. Tea of the Sages: The Art of Sencha. Honolulu: Uni- versity of Hawai’i Press, 1998.

Hanan, Patrick. The Chinese Vernacular Story. Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 1981.

Huntington, Rania. Alien Kind: Foxes and Late Imperial Chinese Nar- rative. Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Asia Center, 2003.

Kamo no Chomei. “An Account of a Ten-Foot-Square Hut.” Trans- lated by Anthony Chambers. In David L. Pike, Sabry Hafez, Haruo Shirane, and Pauline Yu, eds., The Longman Anthology of World Literature. Volume B, The Medieval Era, pp. 335–344. New York: Pearson Longman, 2004.

Kamo no Chomei. “An Account of a Ten-Foot-Square Hut.” Trans- lated by Anthony Chambers. In Haruo Shirane, ed., Traditional Japanese Literature: An Anthology: Beginnings to 1600, pp. 623–635. New York: Columbia University Press, 2007.

Kao, Karl S. Y., ed. Classical Chinese Tales of the Supernatural and the Fantastic: Selections from the Third to the Tenth Century. Blooming- ton: Indiana University Press, 1985.

Keene, Donald. World Within Walls: Japanese Literature of the Pre- Modern Era, 1600–1867. New York: Holt, 1976. [Chapter 16 is on Akinari]

224 bibl iography

Keikai [Kyokai]. Miraculous Stories from the Japanese Buddhist Tradi- tion: The “Nihon ryoiki” of the Monk Kyokai. Translated by Kyoko Motomochi Nakamura. Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 1973.

LaFleur, William R. Awesome Nightfall: The Life, Times, and Poetry of Saigyo. Boston: Wisdom, 2003.

LaFleur, William R. The Karma of Words: Buddhism and the Literary Arts in Medieval Japan. Berkeley: University of California Press, 1983.

Legge, James, trans. The Four Books: Confucian Analects, The Great Learning, The Doctrine of the Mean, and The Works of Mencius. 1879. 1923. “An unaltered and unabridged reprint of the Shanghai 1923 Edition,” New York: Paragon, 1966.

Leupp, Gary. Male Colors: The Construction of Homosexuality in Tokugawa Japan. Berkeley: University of California Press, 1996.

Lin Yutang. “The Man Who Became a Fish.” In Famous Chinese Short Stories, pp. 273–278. New York: Day, 1948.

Marceau, Lawrence E. Takebe Ayatari: A Bunjin Bohemian in Early Modern Japan. Ann Arbor: Center for Japanese Studies, University of Michigan, 2004.

McCarthy, Paul. “Ugetsu Monogatari, from Page to Screen: An Inter- pretive Essay.” Asiatica Venetiana 6–7 (2001–2002): 139–148.

McCullough, Helen Craig, trans. Tales of Ise: Lyrical Episodes from Tenth-Century Japan. Stanford, Calif.: Stanford University Press, 1968.

McCullough, William H., and Helen Craig McCullough, trans. A Tale of Flowering Fortunes: Annals of Japanese Aristocratic Life in the Heian Period. 2 vols. Stanford, Calif.: Stanford University Press, 1980.

Mencius. Mencius. Translated by D. C. Lau. Harmondsworth: Pen- guin, 1970.

Miner, Earl, Hiroko Odagiri, and Robert E. Morrell. The Princeton Companion to Classical Japanese Literature. Princeton, N.J.: Prince- ton University Press, 1985.

Moore, Jean. “Senjusho: Buddhist Tales of Renunciation.” Monumenta Nipponica 41, no. 2 (1986): 127–174. [Includes “7 Shiramine in Sanuki Province,” pp. 158–160]

Morris, Mark. “Buson and Shiki: Part One.” Harvard Journal of Asi- atic Studies 44, no. 2 (1984): 381–425.

bibl iography 225

Morris, Mark. “Group Portrait with Artist: Yosa Buson and His Patrons.” In C. Andrew Gerstle, ed., 18th Century Japan: Culture and Society, pp. 87–105. Sydney: Allen & Unwin, 1989.

Murasaki Shikibu. The Tale of Genji: A Novel in Six Parts. Translated by Arthur Waley. Boston: Houghton Mifflin, 1935.

Murasaki Shikibu. The Tale of Genji. Translated by Edward G. Seiden- sticker. New York: Knopf, 1976.

Murasaki Shikibu. The Tale of Genji. 2 vols. Translated by Royall Tyler. New York: Viking, 2001.

Najita, Tetsuo. Visions of Virtue in Tokugawa Japan: The Kaitokudo, Merchant Academy of Osaka. Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1987.

Nakano Mitsutoshi. “The Role of Traditional Aesthetics.” Translated by Maria Flutsch. In C. Andrew Gerstle, ed., 18th Century Japan: Culture and Society, pp. 124–131. Sydney: Allen & Unwin, 1989.

Nosco, Peter. Remembering Paradise: Nativism and Nostalgia in Eighteenth- Century Japan. Harvard Yenching Monograph Series, no. 31. Cam- bridge, Mass.: Harvard University, Council on East Asian Studies, 1990.

Okada, H. Richard. Figures of Resistance: Language, Poetry, and Narrat- ing in The Tale of Genji and Other Mid-Heian Texts. Durham, N.C.: Duke University Press, 1991.

Po Chü-I. Selected Poems. Translated by Burton Watson. New York: Columbia University Press, 2000.

Pollack, David. The Fracture of Meaning: Japan’s Synthesis of China from the Eighth Through the Eighteenth Centuries. Princeton, N.J.: Princeton University Press, 1986.

Reider, Noriko T. Tales of the Supernatural in Early Modern Japan: Kai- dan, Akinari, Ugetsu Monogatari. Japanese Studies, vol. 16. Lewis- ton, N.Y.: Mellen, 2002.

Reischauer, Edwin O., and Joseph K. Yamagiwa, eds. and trans. Trans- lations from Early Japanese Literature. Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 1951. [Includes Reischauer’s partial translation of Heiji monogatari]

Rimer, J. Thomas. Modern Japanese Fiction and Its Traditions: An Introduction. Princeton N.J.: Princeton University Press, 1978. [Chapter 7 is on Akinari]

Saigyo. Poems of a Mountain Home. Translated by Burton Watson. New York: Columbia University Press, 1991.

226 bibl iography

Sansom, George. A History of Japan. Vol. 1, To 1334. Stanford, Calif.: Stanford University Press, 1958.

Sansom, George. A History of Japan. Vol. 2, 1334–1615. Stanford, Calif.: Stanford University Press, 1961.

Sansom, George. A History of Japan. Vol. 3, 1615–1867. Stanford, Calif.: Stanford University Press, 1963.

Schulte, Rainer, and John Biguenet, eds. Theories of Translation: An Anthology of Essays from Dryden to Derrida. Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1992.

Screech, Timon. Sex and the Floating World: Erotic Images in Japan, 1700–1820. Honolulu: University of Hawai’i Press, 1999.

Shi Nai’an and Luo Guanzhong. The Broken Seals: Part One of “The Marshes of Mount Liang,” a New Translation of the “Shuihu Zhuan” or “Water Margin.” Translated by John Dent-Young and Alex Dent- Young. Hong Kong: Chinese University Press, 1994.

Shirane, Haruo. The Bridge of Dreams: A Poetics of The Tale of Genji. Stanford, Calif.: Stanford University Press, 1987.

Shirane, Haruo, ed. Early Modern Japanese Literature: An Anthology, 1600–1900. New York: Columbia University Press, 2002.

Shirane, Haruo, ed. Traditional Japanese Literature: An Anthology, Beginnings to 1600. New York: Columbia University Press, 2007.

Ssu-ma Ch’ien [Sima Qian]. Records of the Grand Historian of China. 2 vols. Translated by Burton Watson. New York: Columbia Univer- sity Press, 1961.

Statler, Oliver. Japanese Pilgrimage. New York: Morrow, 1983. [Statler deftly summarizes the stories of Saigyo, Sutoku, and the Hogen Insurrection, and describes his own visit to Shiramine]

Takata [Takada] Mamoru. “Ugetsu Monogatari: A Critical Interpreta- tion.” In Kengi Hamada, trans., Tales of Moonlight and Rain: Japa- nese Gothic Tales, pp. xxi–xxix. Tokyo: University of Tokyo Press, 1971; New York: Columbia University Press, 1972.

Takebe Ayatari. “A Tale of the Western Hills: Takebe Ayatari’s Nishi- yama Monogatari.” Translated by Blake Morgan Young. Monu- menta Nipponica 37, no. 1 (1982): 77–121.

Todorov, Tzvetan. The Fantastic: A Structural Approach to a Literary Genre. Translated by Richard Howard. Cleveland: Press of Case Western Reserve University, 1973.

Totman, Conrad. Early Modern Japan. Berkeley: University of Califor- nia Press, 1993.

bibl iography 227

Waley, Arthur, ed. and trans. The Book of Songs. 1937. Reprint, New York: Grove Press, 1960.

Washburn, Dennis. “Ghostwriters and Literary Haunts: Subordinat- ing Ethics to Art in Ugetsu Monogatari.” Monumenta Nipponica 45, no. 1 (1990): 39–74.

Watson, Burton, trans. Chuang Tzu: Basic Writings. New York: Colum- bia University Press, 1964.

Watson, Burton, trans. The Lotus Sutra. New York: Columbia Univer- sity Press, 1993.

Wilson, William R., trans. Hogen Monogatari: Tale of the Disorder in Hogen. Cornell East Asia Series, no. 99. Ithaca, N.Y.: East Asia Program, Cornell University, 2001. [Includes a translation of the Senjusho (Selected Stories) tale “The Grave of the Shin-in at Shira- mine,” from which Akinari drew material for “Shiramine”]

Yoshida Kenko. Essays in Idleness: The “Tsurezuregusa” of Kenko. Translated by Donald Keene. New York: Columbia University Press, 1967.

Young, Blake Morgan. Ueda Akinari. Vancouver: University of British Columbia Press, 1982.

Zeitlin, Judith T. Historian of the Strange: Pu Songling and the Chinese Classical Tale. Stanford, Calif.: Stanford University Press, 1993.

P R E V I O U S E N G L I S H T R A N S L A T I O N S O F A K I N A R I

Allen, Lewis, trans. “‘The Chrysanthemum Vow,’ from the Ugetsu Monogatari (1776) by Ueda Akinari.” Durham University Journal, n.s., 28, no. 2 (1967): 108–116.

Blacker, Carmen, and W. E. Skillend, trans. “Muo no rigyo (The Dream Carp).” In F. T. Daniels, ed., Selections from Japanese Literature (12th to 19th Centuries), pp. 91–103, 164–171. London: Lund Humphries, 1959.

Chambers, Anthony, trans. “The Chrysanthemum Vow,” “The Reed- Choked House,” and “A Serpent’s Lust.” In Haruo Shirane, ed., Early Modern Japanese Literature: An Anthology, 1600–1900, pp. 567–598. New York: Columbia University Press, 2002. [Earlier versions of my translations of these three stories]

Chambers, Anthony, trans. “Hankai: A Translation from Harusame monogatari.” Monumenta Nipponica 25, no. 3 (1970): 371–406.

Chatani, Hiroshi, trans. “The Pot at Kibitsu” and “The Blue Hood.” Available at: http://www.kcc.zaq.ne.jp/dfeea307/.

Hamada, Kengi, trans. Tales of Moonlight and Rain: Japanese Gothic Tales. Tokyo: University of Tokyo Press, 1971; New York: Columbia University Press, 1972.

Hansey, Alf, trans. “The Blue Hood.” The Young East 2, no. 9 (1927): 314–319.

Hearn, Lafcadio, trans. “Of a Promise Kept” (Kikka no chigiri) and “The Story of Kogi” (Muo no rigyo). In The Writings of Lafcadio Hearn, pp. 193–198, 230–237. Boston: Houghton Mifflin, 1922.

Jackman, Barry, trans. Tales of the Spring Rain. Tokyo: University of Tokyo Press, 1975; New York: Columbia University Press, 1979.

Richie, Donald. “The Ghoul-Priest: A Commentary.” In Zen Inklings: Some Stories, Fables, Parables, Sermons, and Prints, pp. 79–90. New York: Weatherhill, 1982. [On “The Blue Hood”]

Sasaki, Takamasa, trans. Ueda Akinari’s Tales of a Rain’d Moon. Tokyo: Hokuseido, 1981.

Saunders, Dale, trans. “Ugetsu Monogatari, or Tales of Moonlight and Rain.” Monumenta Nipponica 21, nos. 1–2 (1966): 171–202. [Includes “Author’s Preface,” “The Chrysanthemum Tryst,” “Bup- poso,” and “The Blue Hood”]

Seitz, Don C., ed. “The Carp in a Dream.” In Monogatari: Tales from Old and New Japan, pp. 106–112. New York: Putnam, 1924.

Sibley, William F., trans. “The Blue Cowl.” In Stephen D. Miller, ed., Partings at Dawn: An Anthology of Japanese Gay Literature, pp. 125– 133. San Francisco: Gay Sunshine Press, 1996.

Ueda, Makoto, trans. “A Blue Hood.” San Francisco Review 1, no. 4 (1960): 42–47.

Whitehouse, Wilfrid, trans. “‘Shiramine’: A Translation with Com- ments.” Monumenta Nipponica 1, no. 1 (1938): 242–258.

Whitehouse, Wilfrid, trans. “Ugetsu Monogatari: Tales of a Clouded Moon.” Monumenta Nipponica 1, no. 2 (1938): 549–567. [Includes “Asajigayado (The Cottage in the Wilderness)” and “Binfukuron (An Argument on Wealth)”]

Whitehouse, Wilfrid, trans. “Ugetsu Monogatari: Tales of a Clouded Moon.” Monumenta Nipponica 4, no. 1 (1941): 166–191. [Includes “Jasei no In (The Passion of a Snake)” and “Kibitsu no Kama (The Kibitsu Cauldron)”]

Zolbrod, Leon M., trans. and ed. Ugetsu Monogatari: Tales of Moon- light and Rain: A Complete English Version of the Eighteenth-Century Japanese Collection of Tales of the Supernatural. Vancouver: Univer- sity of British Columbia Press, 1974.

228 bibl iography

Translations from the Asian Classics

Major Plays of Chikamatsu, tr. Donald Keene 1961 Four Major Plays of Chikamatsu, tr. Donald Keene. Paperback ed. only. 1961;

rev. ed. 1997 Records of the Grand Historian of China, translated from the Shih chi of Ssu-ma

Ch’ien, tr. Burton Watson, 2 vols. 1961 Instructions for Practical Living and Other Neo-Confucian Writings by Wang

Yang-ming, tr. Wing-tsit Chan 1963 Hsün Tzu: Basic Writings, tr. Burton Watson, paperback ed. only. 1963; rev.

ed. 1996 Chuang Tzu: Basic Writings, tr. Burton Watson, paperback ed. only. 1964; rev.

ed. 1996 The Mahabharata, tr. Chakravarthi V. Narasimhan. Also in paperback ed.

1965; rev. ed. 1997 The Manyoshu, Nippon Gakujutsu Shinkokai edition 1965 Su Tung-p’o: Selections from a Sung Dynasty Poet, tr. Burton Watson. Also in

paperback ed. 1965 Bhartrihari: Poems, tr. Barbara Stoler Miller. Also in paperback ed. 1967 Basic Writings of Mo Tzu, Hsün Tzu, and Han Fei Tzu, tr. Burton Watson. Also

in separate paperback eds. 1967 The Awakening of Faith, Attributed to Asvaghosha, tr. Yoshito S. Hakeda. Also

in paperback ed. 1967 Reflections on Things at Hand: The Neo-Confucian Anthology, comp. Chu Hsi

and Lü Tsu-ch’ien, tr. Wing-tsit Chan 1967 The Platform Sutra of the Sixth Patriarch, tr. Philip B. Yampolsky. Also in paper-

back ed. 1967

O T H E R W O R K S I N T H E C O LU M B I A A S I A N S T U D I E S S E R I E S

Essays in Idleness: The Tsurezuregusa of Kenko, tr. Donald Keene. Also in paper- back ed. 1967

The Pillow Book of Sei Shonagon, tr. Ivan Morris, 2 vols. 1967 Two Plays of Ancient India: The Little Clay Cart and the Minister’s Seal, tr. J. A.

B. van Buitenen 1968 The Complete Works of Chuang Tzu, tr. Burton Watson 1968 The Romance of the Western Chamber (Hsi Hsiang chi), tr. S. I. Hsiung. Also in

paperback ed. 1968 The Manyoshu, Nippon Gakujutsu Shinkokai edition. Paperback ed. only. 1969 Records of the Historian: Chapters from the Shih chi of Ssu-ma Ch’ien, tr. Burton

Watson. Paperback ed. only. 1969 Cold Mountain: 100 Poems by the T’ang Poet Han-shan, tr. Burton Watson. Also

in paperback ed. 1970 Twenty Plays of the No Theatre, ed. Donald Keene. Also in paperback ed. 1970 Chushingura: The Treasury of Loyal Retainers, tr. Donald Keene. Also in paper-

back ed. 1971; rev. ed. 1997 The Zen Master Hakuin: Selected Writings, tr. Philip B. Yampolsky 1971 Chinese Rhyme-Prose: Poems in the Fu Form from the Han and Six Dynasties

Periods, tr. Burton Watson. Also in paperback ed. 1971 Kukai: Major Works, tr. Yoshito S. Hakeda. Also in paperback ed. 1972 The Old Man Who Does as He Pleases: Selections from the Poetry and Prose of Lu

Yu, tr. Burton Watson 1973 The Lion’s Roar of Queen Srimala, tr. Alex and Hideko Wayman 1974 Courtier and Commoner in Ancient China: Selections from the History of the For-

mer Han by Pan Ku, tr. Burton Watson. Also in paperback ed. 1974 Japanese Literature in Chinese, vol. 1: Poetry and Prose in Chinese by Japanese

Writers of the Early Period, tr. Burton Watson 1975 Japanese Literature in Chinese, vol. 2: Poetry and Prose in Chinese by Japanese

Writers of the Later Period, tr. Burton Watson 1976 Scripture of the Lotus Blossom of the Fine Dharma, tr. Leon Hurvitz. Also in

paperback ed. 1976 Love Song of the Dark Lord: Jayadeva’s Gitagovinda, tr. Barbara Stoler Miller.

Also in paperback ed. Cloth ed. includes critical text of the Sanskrit. 1977; rev. ed. 1997

Ryokan: Zen Monk-Poet of Japan, tr. Burton Watson 1977 Calming the Mind and Discerning the Real: From the Lam rim chen mo of Tsoç-

kha-pa, tr. Alex Wayman 1978 The Hermit and the Love-Thief: Sanskrit Poems of Bhartrihari and Bilhaça, tr.

Barbara Stoler Miller 1978 The Lute: Kao Ming’s P’i-p’a chi, tr. Jean Mulligan. Also in paperback ed. 1980 A Chronicle of Gods and Sovereigns: Jinno Shotoki of Kitabatake Chikafusa, tr. H.

Paul Varley 1980 Among the Flowers: The Hua-chien chi, tr. Lois Fusek 1982 Grass Hill: Poems and Prose by the Japanese Monk Gensei, tr. Burton Watson

1983 Doctors, Diviners, and Magicians of Ancient China: Biographies of Fang-shih, tr.

Kenneth J. DeWoskin. Also in paperback ed. 1983

230 other works in columbia asian studies series

Theater of Memory: The Plays of Kalidasa, ed. Barbara Stoler Miller. Also in paperback ed. 1984

The Columbia Book of Chinese Poetry: From Early Times to the Thirteenth Cen- tury, ed. and tr. Burton Watson. Also in paperback ed. 1984

Poems of Love and War: From the Eight Anthologies and the Ten Long Poems of Clas- sical Tamil, tr. A. K. Ramanujan. Also in paperback ed. 1985

The Bhagavad Gita: Krishna’s Counsel in Time of War, tr. Barbara Stoler Miller 1986

The Columbia Book of Later Chinese Poetry, ed. and tr. Jonathan Chaves. Also in paperback ed. 1986

The Tso Chuan: Selections from China’s Oldest Narrative History, tr. Burton Wat- son 1989

Waiting for the Wind: Thirty-six Poets of Japan’s Late Medieval Age, tr. Steven Carter 1989

Selected Writings of Nichiren, ed. Philip B. Yampolsky 1990 Saigyo, Poems of a Mountain Home, tr. Burton Watson 1990 The Book of Lieh Tzu: A Classic of the Tao, tr. A. C. Graham. Morningside ed.

1990 The Tale of an Anklet: An Epic of South India—The Cilappatikaram of Ilaçko

Atikal, tr. R. Parthasarathy 1993 Waiting for the Dawn: A Plan for the Prince, tr. and introduction by Wm. Theo-

dore de Bary 1993 Yoshitsune and the Thousand Cherry Trees: A Masterpiece of the Eighteenth-Cen-

tury Japanese Puppet Theater, tr., annotated, and with introduction by Stan- leigh H. Jones, Jr. 1993

The Lotus Sutra, tr. Burton Watson. Also in paperback ed. 1993 The Classic of Changes: A New Translation of the I Ching as Interpreted by Wang

Bi, tr. Richard John Lynn 1994 Beyond Spring: Tz’u Poems of the Sung Dynasty, tr. Julie Landau 1994 The Columbia Anthology of Traditional Chinese Literature, ed. Victor H. Mair

1994 Scenes for Mandarins: The Elite Theater of the Ming, tr. Cyril Birch 1995 Letters of Nichiren, ed. Philip B. Yampolsky; tr. Burton Watson et al. 1996 Unforgotten Dreams: Poems by the Zen Monk Shotetsu, tr. Steven D. Carter 1997 The Vimalakirti Sutra, tr. Burton Watson 1997 Japanese and Chinese Poems to Sing: The Wakan roei shu, tr. J. Thomas Rimer

and Jonathan Chaves 1997 Breeze Through Bamboo: Kanshi of Ema Saiko, tr. Hiroaki Sato 1998 A Tower for the Summer Heat, by Li Yu, tr. Patrick Hanan 1998 Traditional Japanese Theater: An Anthology of Plays, by Karen Brazell 1998 The Original Analects: Sayings of Confucius and His Successors (0479–0249), by

E. Bruce Brooks and A. Taeko Brooks 1998 The Classic of the Way and Virtue: A New Translation of the Tao-te ching of Laozi

as Interpreted by Wang Bi, tr. Richard John Lynn 1999 The Four Hundred Songs of War and Wisdom: An Anthology of Poems from Clas-

sical Tamil, The Puranaçuru, ed. and tr. George L. Hart and Hank Heifetz 1999

other works in columbia asian studies series 231

Original Tao: Inward Training (Nei-yeh) and the Foundations of Taoist Mysti- cism, by Harold D. Roth 1999

Lao Tzu’s Tao Te Ching: A Translation of the Startling New Documents Found at Guodian, by Robert G. Henricks 2000

The Shorter Columbia Anthology of Traditional Chinese Literature, ed. Victor H. Mair 2000

Mistress and Maid (Jiaohongji), by Meng Chengshun, tr. Cyril Birch 2001 Chikamatsu: Five Late Plays, tr. and ed. C. Andrew Gerstle 2001 The Essential Lotus: Selections from the Lotus Sutra, tr. Burton Watson 2002 Early Modern Japanese Literature: An Anthology, 1600–1900, ed. Haruo Shirane

2002 The Sound of the Kiss, or The Story That Must Never Be Told: Pingali Suranna’s

Kalapurnodayamu, tr. Vecheru Narayana Rao and David Shulman 2003 The Selected Poems of Du Fu, tr. Burton Watson 2003 Far Beyond the Field: Haiku by Japanese Women, tr. Makoto Ueda 2003 Just Living: Poems and Prose by the Japanese Monk Tonna, ed. and tr. Steven D.

Carter 2003 Han Feizi: Basic Writings, tr. Burton Watson 2003 Mozi: Basic Writings, tr. Burton Watson 2003 Xunzi: Basic Writings, tr. Burton Watson 2003 Zhuangzi: Basic Writings, tr. Burton Watson 2003 The Awakening of Faith, Attributed to Asvaghosha, tr. Yoshito S. Hakeda, intro-

duction by Ryuichi Abe 2005 The Tales of the Heike, tr. Burton Watson, ed. Haruo Shirane 2006

Modern Asian Literature

Modern Japanese Drama: An Anthology, ed. and tr. Ted. Takaya. Also in paper- back ed. 1979

Mask and Sword: Two Plays for the Contemporary Japanese Theater, by Yamazaki Masakazu, tr. J. Thomas Rimer 1980

Yokomitsu Riichi, Modernist, by Dennis Keene 1980 Nepali Visions, Nepali Dreams: The Poetry of Laxmiprasad Devkota, tr. David

Rubin 1980 Literature of the Hundred Flowers, vol. 1: Criticism and Polemics, ed. Hualing

Nieh 1981 Literature of the Hundred Flowers, vol. 2: Poetry and Fiction, ed. Hualing Nieh

1981 Modern Chinese Stories and Novellas, 1919–1949, ed. Joseph S. M. Lau, C. T.

Hsia, and Leo Ou-fan Lee. Also in paperback ed. 1984 A View by the Sea, by Yasuoka Shotaro, tr. Kären Wigen Lewis 1984 Other Worlds: Arishima Takeo and the Bounds of Modern Japanese Fiction, by

Paul Anderer 1984 Selected Poems of So Chongju, tr. with introduction by David R. McCann 1989 The Sting of Life: Four Contemporary Japanese Novelists, by Van C. Gessel

1989 Stories of Osaka Life, by Oda Sakunosuke, tr. Burton Watson 1990

232 other works in columbia asian studies series

The Bodhisattva, or Samantabhadra, by Ishikawa Jun, tr. with introduction by William Jefferson Tyler 1990

The Travels of Lao Ts’an, by Liu T’ieh-yün, tr. Harold Shadick. Morningside ed. 1990

Three Plays by Kobo Abe, tr. with introduction by Donald Keene 1993 The Columbia Anthology of Modern Chinese Literature, ed. Joseph S. M. Lau and

Howard Goldblatt 1995 Modern Japanese Tanka, ed. and tr. Makoto Ueda 1996 Masaoka Shiki: Selected Poems, ed. and tr. Burton Watson 1997 Writing Women in Modern China: An Anthology of Women’s Literature from the

Early Twentieth Century, ed. and tr. Amy D. Dooling and Kristina M. Torge- son 1998

American Stories, by Nagai Kafu, tr. Mitsuko Iriye 2000 The Paper Door and Other Stories, by Shiga Naoya, tr. Lane Dunlop 2001 Grass for My Pillow, by Saiichi Maruya, tr. Dennis Keene 2002 For All My Walking: Free-Verse Haiku of Taneda Santoka, with Excerpts from His

Diaries, tr. Burton Watson 2003 The Columbia Anthology of Modern Japanese Literature, vol 1: From Restora-

tion to Occupation, 1868–1945, ed. J. Thomas Rimer and Van C. Gessel 2005

Studies in Asian Culture

The Onin War: History of Its Origins and Background, with a Selective Translation of the Chronicle of Onin, by H. Paul Varley 1967

Chinese Government in Ming Times: Seven Studies, ed. Charles O. Hucker 1969 The Actors’ Analects (Yakusha Rongo), ed. and tr. Charles J. Dunn and Bungo

Torigoe 1969 Self and Society in Ming Thought, by Wm. Theodore de Bary and the Confer-

ence on Ming Thought. Also in paperback ed. 1970 A History of Islamic Philosophy, by Majid Fakhry, 2d ed. 1983 Phantasies of a Love Thief: The Caurapanatcasika Attributed to Bilhaça, by Bar-

bara Stoler Miller 1971 Iqbal: Poet-Philosopher of Pakistan, ed. Hafeez Malik 1971 The Golden Tradition: An Anthology of Urdu Poetry, ed. and tr. Ahmed Ali. Also

in paperback ed. 1973 Conquerors and Confucians: Aspects of Political Change in Late Yüan China, by

John W. Dardess 1973 The Unfolding of Neo-Confucianism, by Wm. Theodore de Bary and the Con-

ference on Seventeenth-Century Chinese Thought. Also in paperback ed. 1975

To Acquire Wisdom: The Way of Wang Yang-ming, by Julia Ching 1976 Gods, Priests, and Warriors: The Bhr¥gus of the Mahabharata, by Robert P. Gold-

man 1977 Mei Yao-ch’en and the Development of Early Sung Poetry, by Jonathan Chaves

1976 The Legend of Semimaru, Blind Musician of Japan, by Susan Matisoff 1977

other works in columbia asian studies series 233

Sir Sayyid Ahmad Khan and Muslim Modernization in India and Pakistan, by Hafeez Malik 1980

The Khilafat Movement: Religious Symbolism and Political Mobilization in India, by Gail Minault 1982

The World of K’ung Shang-jen: A Man of Letters in Early Ch’ing China, by Rich- ard Strassberg 1983

The Lotus Boat: The Origins of Chinese Tz’u Poetry in T’ang Popular Culture, by Marsha L. Wagner 1984

Expressions of Self in Chinese Literature, ed. Robert E. Hegel and Richard C. Hessney 1985

Songs for the Bride: Women’s Voices and Wedding Rites of Rural India, by W. G. Archer; ed. Barbara Stoler Miller and Mildred Archer 1986

The Confucian Kingship in Korea: Y∂ngjo and the Politics of Sagacity, by JaHyun Kim Haboush 1988

Companions to Asian Studies

Approaches to the Oriental Classics, ed. Wm. Theodore de Bary 1959 Early Chinese Literature, by Burton Watson. Also in paperback ed. 1962 Approaches to Asian Civilizations, ed. Wm. Theodore de Bary and Ainslie T.

Embree 1964 The Classic Chinese Novel: A Critical Introduction, by C. T. Hsia. Also in paper-

back ed. 1968 Chinese Lyricism: Shih Poetry from the Second to the Twelfth Century, tr. Burton

Watson. Also in paperback ed. 1971 A Syllabus of Indian Civilization, by Leonard A. Gordon and Barbara Stoler

Miller 1971 Twentieth-Century Chinese Stories, ed. C. T. Hsia and Joseph S. M. Lau. Also in

paperback ed. 1971 A Syllabus of Chinese Civilization, by J. Mason Gentzler, 2d ed. 1972 A Syllabus of Japanese Civilization, by H. Paul Varley, 2d ed. 1972 An Introduction to Chinese Civilization, ed. John Meskill, with the assistance of

J. Mason Gentzler 1973 An Introduction to Japanese Civilization, ed. Arthur E. Tiedemann 1974 Ukifune: Love in the Tale of Genji, ed. Andrew Pekarik 1982 The Pleasures of Japanese Literature, by Donald Keene 1988 A Guide to Oriental Classics, ed. Wm. Theodore de Bary and Ainslie T. Embree;

3d edition ed. Amy Vladeck Heinrich, 2 vols. 1989

Introduction to Asian Civilizations

wm. theodore de bary , general editor

Sources of Japanese Tradition, 1958; paperback ed., 2 vols., 1964. 2d ed., vol. 1, 2001, compiled by Wm. Theodore de Bary, Donald Keene, George Tanabe,

234 other works in columbia asian studies series

and Paul Varley; vol. 2, 2005, compiled by Wm. Theodore de Bary, Carol Gluck, and Arthur E. Tiedemann

Sources of Indian Tradition, 1958; paperback ed., 2 vols., 1964. 2d ed., 2 vols., 1988

Sources of Chinese Tradition, 1960, paperback ed., 2 vols., 1964. 2d ed., vol. 1, 1999, compiled by Wm. Theodore de Bary and Irene Bloom; vol. 2, 2000, compiled by Wm. Theodore de Bary and Richard Lufrano

Sources of Korean Tradition, 1997; 2 vols., vol. 1, 1997, compiled by Peter H. Lee and Wm. Theodore de Bary; vol. 2, 2001, compiled by Y∂ngho Ch’oe, Peter H. Lee, and Wm. Theodore de Bary

Neo-Confucian Studies

Instructions for Practical Living and Other Neo-Confucian Writings by Wang Yang-ming, tr. Wing-tsit Chan 1963

Reflections on Things at Hand: The Neo-Confucian Anthology, comp. Chu Hsi and Lü Tsu-ch’ien, tr. Wing-tsit Chan 1967

Self and Society in Ming Thought, by Wm. Theodore de Bary and the Confer- ence on Ming Thought. Also in paperback ed. 1970

The Unfolding of Neo-Confucianism, by Wm. Theodore de Bary and the Con- ference on Seventeenth-Century Chinese Thought. Also in paperback ed. 1975

Principle and Practicality: Essays in Neo-Confucianism and Practical Learning, ed. Wm. Theodore de Bary and Irene Bloom. Also in paperback ed. 1979

The Syncretic Religion of Lin Chao-en, by Judith A. Berling 1980 The Renewal of Buddhism in China: Chu-hung and the Late Ming Synthesis, by

Chün-fang Yü 1981 Neo-Confucian Orthodoxy and the Learning of the Mind-and-Heart, by Wm.

Theodore de Bary 1981 Yüan Thought: Chinese Thought and Religion Under the Mongols, ed. Hok-lam

Chan and Wm. Theodore de Bary 1982 The Liberal Tradition in China, by Wm. Theodore de Bary 1983 The Development and Decline of Chinese Cosmology, by John B. Henderson

1984 The Rise of Neo-Confucianism in Korea, by Wm. Theodore de Bary and JaHyun

Kim Haboush 1985 Chiao Hung and the Restructuring of Neo-Confucianism in Late Ming, by Edward

T. Ch’ien 1985 Neo-Confucian Terms Explained: Pei-hsi tzu-i, by Ch’en Ch’un, ed. and tr. Wing-

tsit Chan 1986 Knowledge Painfully Acquired: K’un-chih chi, by Lo Ch’in-shun, ed. and tr. Irene

Bloom 1987 To Become a Sage: The Ten Diagrams on Sage Learning, by Yi T’oegye, ed. and

tr. Michael C. Kalton 1988 The Message of the Mind in Neo-Confucian Thought, by Wm. Theodore de Bary

1989

other works in columbia asian studies series 235

Translations f rom the Asian Classics

Editorial Board Wm. Theodore de Bary, Chairman

Paul Anderer Irene Bloom

Donald Keene George A. Saliba Haruo Shirane Bur ton Watson

Wei Shang

  • CONTENTS
  • ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
  • INTRODUCTION
  • PREFACE
  • BOOK ONE
  • BOOK TWO
  • BOOK THREE
  • BOOK FOUR
  • BOOK FIVE
  • BIBLIOGRAPHY